1
2
3
4
5
6
7
8
9
10
11
12
13
14
15
16
17
18
19
20
21
22
23
24
25
26
27
28
29
30
31
32
33
34
35
36
37
38
39
40
41
42
43
44
45
46
47
48
49
50
51
52
53
54
55
56
57
58
59
60
61
62
63
64
65
66
67
68
69
70
71
72
73
74
75
76
77
78
79
80
81
82
83
84
85
86
87
88
89
90
91
92
93
94
95
96
97
98
99
100
101
102
103
104
105
106
107
108
109
110
111
112
113
114
115
116
117
118
119
120
121
122
123
124
125
126
127
128
129
130
131
132
133
134
135
136
137
138
139
140
141
142
143
144
145
146
147
148
149
150
151
152
153
154
155
156
157
158
159
160
161
162
163
164
165
166
167
168
169
170
171
172
173
174
175
176
177
178
179
180
181
182
183
184
185
186
187
188
189
190
191
192
193
194
195
196
197
198
199
200
201
202
203
204
205
206
207
208
209
210
211
212
213
214
215
216
217
218
219
220
221
222
223
224
225
226
227
228
229
230
231
232
233
234
235
236
237
238
239
240
241
242
243
244
245
246
247
248
249
250
251
252
253
254
255
256
257
258
259
260
261
262
263
264
265
266
267
268
269
270
271
272
273
274
275
276
277
278
279
280
281
282
283
284
285
286
287
288
289
290
291
292
293
294
295
296
297
298
299
300
301
302
303
304
305
306
307
308
309
310
311
312
313
314
315
316
317
318
319
320
321
322
323
324
325
326
327
328
329
330
331
332
333
334
335
336
337
338
339
340
341
342
343
344
345
346
347
348
349
350
351
352
353
354
355
356
357
358
359
360
361
362
363
364
365
366
367
368
369
370
371
372
373
374
375
376
377
378
379
380
381
382
383
384
385
386
387
388
389
390
391
392
393
394
395
396
397
398
399
400
401
402
403
404
405
406
407
408
409
410
411
412
413
414
415
416
417
418
419
420
421
422
423
424
425
426
427
428
429
430
431
432
433
434
435
436
437
438
439
440
441
442
443
444
445
446
447
448
449
450
451
452
453
454
455
456
457
458
459
460
461
462
463
464
465
466
467
468
469
470
471
472
473
474
475
476
477
478
479
480
481
482
483
484
485
486
487
488
489
490
491
492
493
494
495
496
497
498
499
500
501
502
503
504
505
506
507
508
509
510
511
512
513
514
515
516
517
518
519
520
521
522
523
524
525
526
527
528
529
530
531
532
533
534
535
536
537
538
539
540
541
542
543
544
545
546
547
548
549
550
551
552
553
554
555
556
557
558
559
560
561
562
563
564
565
566
567
568
569
570
571
572
573
574
575
576
577
578
579
580
581
582
583
584
585
586
587
588
589
590
591
592
593
594
595
596
597
598
599
600
601
602
603
604
605
606
607
608
609
610
611
612
613
614
615
616
617
618
619
620
621
622
623
624
625
626
627
628
629
630
631
632
633
634
635
636
637
638
639
640
641
642
643
644
645
646
647
648
649
650
651
652
653
654
655
656
657
658
659
660
661
662
663
664
665
666
667
668
669
670
671
672
673
674
675
676
677
678
679
680
681
682
683
684
685
686
687
688
689
690
691
692
693
694
695
696
697
698
699
700
701
702
703
704
705
706
707
708
709
710
711
712
713
714
715
716
717
718
719
720
721
722
723
724
725
726
727
728
729
730
731
732
733
734
735
736
737
738
739
740
741
742
743
744
745
746
747
748
749
750
751
752
753
754
755
756
757
758
759
760
761
762
763
764
765
766
767
768
769
770
771
772
773
774
775
776
777
778
779
780
781
782
783
784
785
786
787
788
789
790
791
792
793
794
795
796
797
798
799
800
801
802
803
804
805
806
807
808
809
810
811
812
813
814
815
816
817
818
819
820
821
822
823
824
825
826
827
828
829
830
831
832
833
834
835
836
837
838
839
840
841
842
843
844
845
846
847
848
849
850
851
852
853
854
855
856
857
858
859
860
861
862
863
864
865
866
867
868
869
870
871
872
873
874
875
876
877
878
879
880
881
882
883
884
885
886
887
888
889
890
891
892
893
894
895
896
897
898
899
900
901
902
903
904
905
906
907
908
909
910
911
912
913
914
915
916
917
918
919
920
921
922
923
924
925
926
927
928
929
930
931
932
933
934
935
936
937
938
939
940
941
942
943
944
945
946
947
948
949
950
951
952
953
954
955
956
957
958
959
960
961
962
963
964
965
966
967
968
969
970
971
972
973
974
975
976
977
978
979
980
981
982
983
984
985
986
987
988
989
990
991
992
993
994
995
996
997
998
999
1000
1001
1002
1003
1004
1005
1006
1007
1008
1009
1010
1011
1012
1013
1014
1015
1016
1017
1018
1019
1020
1021
1022
1023
1024
1025
1026
1027
1028
1029
1030
1031
1032
1033
1034
1035
1036
1037
1038
1039
1040
1041
1042
1043
1044
1045
1046
1047
1048
1049
1050
1051
1052
1053
1054
1055
1056
1057
1058
1059
1060
1061
1062
1063
1064
1065
1066
1067
1068
1069
1070
1071
1072
1073
1074
1075
1076
1077
1078
1079
1080
1081
1082
1083
1084
1085
1086
1087
1088
1089
1090
1091
1092
1093
1094
1095
1096
1097
1098
1099
1100
1101
1102
1103
1104
1105
1106
1107
1108
1109
1110
1111
1112
1113
1114
1115
1116
1117
1118
1119
1120
1121
1122
1123
1124
1125
1126
1127
1128
1129
1130
1131
1132
1133
1134
1135
1136
1137
1138
1139
1140
1141
1142
1143
1144
1145
1146
1147
1148
1149
1150
1151
1152
1153
1154
1155
1156
1157
1158
1159
1160
1161
1162
1163
1164
1165
1166
1167
1168
1169
1170
1171
1172
1173
1174
1175
1176
1177
1178
1179
1180
1181
1182
1183
1184
1185
1186
1187
1188
1189
1190
1191
1192
1193
1194
1195
1196
1197
1198
1199
1200
1201
1202
1203
1204
1205
1206
1207
1208
1209
1210
1211
1212
1213
1214
1215
1216
1217
1218
1219
1220
1221
1222
1223
1224
1225
1226
1227
1228
1229
1230
1231
1232
1233
1234
1235
1236
1237
1238
1239
1240
1241
1242
1243
1244
1245
1246
1247
1248
1249
1250
1251
1252
1253
1254
1255
1256
1257
1258
1259
1260
1261
1262
1263
1264
1265
1266
1267
1268
1269
1270
1271
1272
1273
1274
1275
1276
1277
1278
1279
1280
1281
1282
1283
1284
1285
1286
1287
1288
1289
1290
1291
1292
1293
1294
1295
1296
1297
1298
1299
1300
1301
1302
1303
1304
1305
1306
1307
1308
1309
1310
1311
1312
1313
1314
1315
1316
1317
1318
1319
1320
1321
1322
1323
1324
1325
1326
1327
1328
1329
1330
1331
1332
1333
1334
1335
1336
1337
1338
1339
1340
1341
1342
1343
1344
1345
1346
1347
1348
1349
1350
1351
1352
1353
1354
1355
1356
1357
1358
1359
1360
1361
1362
1363
1364
1365
1366
1367
1368
1369
1370
1371
1372
1373
1374
1375
1376
1377
1378
1379
1380
1381
1382
1383
1384
1385
1386
1387
1388
1389
1390
1391
1392
1393
1394
1395
1396
1397
1398
1399
1400
1401
1402
1403
1404
1405
1406
1407
1408
1409
1410
1411
1412
1413
1414
1415
1416
1417
1418
1419
1420
1421
1422
1423
1424
1425
1426
1427
1428
1429
1430
1431
1432
1433
1434
1435
1436
1437
1438
1439
1440
1441
1442
1443
1444
1445
1446
1447
1448
1449
1450
1451
1452
1453
1454
1455
1456
1457
1458
1459
1460
1461
1462
1463
1464
1465
1466
1467
1468
1469
1470
1471
1472
1473
1474
1475
1476
1477
1478
1479
1480
1481
1482
1483
1484
1485
1486
1487
1488
1489
1490
1491
1492
1493
1494
1495
1496
1497
1498
1499
1500
1501
1502
1503
1504
1505
1506
1507
1508
1509
1510
1511
1512
1513
1514
1515
1516
1517
1518
1519
1520
1521
1522
1523
1524
1525
1526
1527
1528
1529
1530
1531
1532
1533
1534
1535
1536
1537
1538
1539
1540
1541
1542
1543
1544
1545
1546
1547
1548
1549
1550
1551
1552
1553
1554
1555
1556
1557
1558
1559
1560
1561
1562
1563
1564
1565
1566
1567
1568
1569
1570
1571
1572
1573
1574
1575
1576
1577
1578
1579
1580
1581
1582
1583
1584
1585
1586
1587
1588
1589
1590
1591
1592
1593
1594
1595
1596
1597
1598
1599
1600
1601
1602
1603
1604
1605
1606
1607
1608
1609
1610
1611
1612
1613
1614
1615
1616
1617
1618
1619
1620
1621
1622
1623
1624
1625
1626
1627
1628
1629
1630
1631
1632
1633
1634
1635
1636
1637
1638
1639
1640
1641
1642
1643
1644
1645
1646
1647
1648
1649
1650
1651
1652
1653
1654
1655
1656
1657
1658
1659
1660
1661
1662
1663
1664
1665
1666
1667
1668
1669
1670
1671
1672
1673
1674
1675
1676
1677
1678
1679
1680
1681
1682
1683
1684
1685
1686
1687
1688
1689
1690
1691
1692
1693
1694
1695
1696
1697
1698
1699
1700
1701
1702
1703
1704
1705
1706
1707
1708
1709
1710
1711
1712
1713
1714
1715
1716
1717
1718
1719
1720
1721
1722
1723
1724
1725
1726
1727
1728
1729
1730
1731
1732
1733
1734
1735
1736
1737
1738
1739
1740
1741
1742
1743
1744
1745
1746
1747
1748
1749
1750
1751
1752
1753
1754
1755
1756
1757
1758
1759
1760
1761
1762
1763
1764
1765
1766
1767
1768
1769
1770
1771
1772
1773
1774
1775
1776
1777
1778
1779
1780
1781
1782
1783
1784
1785
1786
1787
1788
1789
1790
1791
1792
1793
1794
1795
1796
1797
1798
1799
1800
1801
1802
1803
1804
1805
1806
1807
1808
1809
1810
1811
1812
1813
1814
1815
1816
1817
1818
1819
1820
1821
1822
1823
1824
1825
1826
1827
1828
1829
1830
1831
1832
1833
1834
1835
1836
1837
1838
1839
1840
1841
1842
1843
1844
1845
1846
1847
1848
1849
1850
1851
1852
1853
1854
1855
1856
1857
1858
1859
1860
1861
1862
1863
1864
1865
1866
1867
1868
1869
1870
1871
1872
1873
1874
1875
1876
1877
1878
1879
1880
1881
1882
1883
1884
1885
1886
1887
1888
1889
1890
1891
1892
1893
1894
1895
1896
1897
1898
1899
1900
1901
1902
1903
1904
1905
1906
1907
1908
1909
1910
1911
1912
1913
1914
1915
1916
1917
1918
1919
1920
1921
1922
1923
1924
1925
1926
1927
1928
1929
1930
1931
1932
1933
1934
1935
1936
1937
1938
1939
1940
1941
1942
1943
1944
1945
1946
1947
1948
1949
1950
1951
1952
1953
1954
1955
1956
1957
1958
1959
1960
1961
1962
1963
1964
1965
1966
1967
1968
1969
1970
1971
1972
1973
1974
1975
1976
1977
1978
1979
1980
1981
1982
1983
1984
1985
1986
1987
1988
1989
1990
1991
1992
1993
1994
1995
1996
1997
1998
1999
2000
2001
2002
2003
2004
2005
2006
2007
2008
2009
2010
2011
2012
2013
2014
2015
2016
2017
2018
2019
2020
2021
2022
2023
2024
2025
2026
2027
2028
2029
2030
2031
2032
2033
2034
2035
2036
2037
2038
2039
2040
2041
2042
2043
2044
2045
2046
2047
2048
2049
2050
2051
2052
2053
2054
2055
2056
2057
2058
2059
2060
2061
2062
2063
2064
2065
2066
2067
2068
2069
2070
2071
2072
2073
2074
2075
2076
2077
2078
2079
2080
2081
2082
2083
2084
2085
2086
2087
2088
2089
2090
2091
2092
2093
2094
2095
2096
2097
2098
2099
2100
2101
2102
2103
2104
2105
2106
2107
2108
2109
2110
2111
2112
2113
2114
2115
2116
2117
2118
2119
2120
2121
2122
2123
2124
2125
2126
2127
2128
2129
2130
2131
2132
2133
2134
2135
2136
2137
2138
2139
2140
2141
2142
2143
2144
2145
2146
2147
2148
2149
2150
2151
2152
2153
2154
2155
2156
2157
2158
2159
2160
2161
2162
2163
2164
2165
2166
2167
2168
2169
2170
2171
2172
2173
2174
2175
2176
2177
2178
2179
2180
2181
2182
2183
2184
2185
2186
2187
2188
2189
2190
2191
2192
2193
2194
2195
2196
2197
2198
2199
2200
2201
2202
2203
2204
2205
2206
2207
2208
2209
2210
2211
2212
2213
2214
2215
2216
2217
2218
2219
2220
2221
2222
2223
2224
2225
2226
2227
2228
2229
2230
2231
2232
2233
2234
2235
2236
2237
2238
2239
2240
2241
2242
2243
2244
2245
2246
2247
2248
2249
2250
2251
2252
2253
2254
2255
2256
2257
2258
2259
2260
2261
2262
2263
2264
2265
2266
2267
2268
2269
2270
2271
2272
2273
2274
2275
2276
2277
2278
2279
2280
2281
2282
2283
2284
2285
2286
2287
2288
2289
2290
2291
2292
2293
2294
2295
2296
2297
2298
2299
2300
2301
2302
2303
2304
2305
2306
2307
2308
2309
2310
2311
2312
2313
2314
2315
2316
2317
2318
2319
2320
2321
2322
2323
2324
2325
2326
2327
2328
2329
2330
2331
2332
2333
2334
2335
2336
2337
2338
2339
2340
2341
2342
2343
2344
2345
2346
2347
2348
2349
2350
2351
2352
2353
2354
2355
2356
2357
2358
2359
2360
2361
2362
2363
2364
2365
2366
2367
2368
2369
2370
2371
2372
2373
2374
2375
2376
2377
2378
2379
2380
2381
2382
2383
2384
2385
2386
2387
2388
2389
2390
2391
2392
2393
2394
2395
2396
2397
2398
2399
2400
2401
2402
2403
2404
2405
2406
2407
2408
2409
2410
2411
2412
2413
2414
2415
2416
2417
2418
2419
2420
2421
2422
2423
2424
2425
2426
2427
2428
2429
2430
2431
2432
2433
2434
2435
2436
2437
2438
2439
2440
2441
2442
2443
2444
2445
2446
2447
2448
2449
2450
2451
2452
2453
2454
2455
2456
2457
2458
2459
2460
2461
2462
2463
2464
2465
2466
2467
2468
2469
2470
2471
2472
2473
2474
2475
2476
2477
2478
2479
2480
2481
2482
2483
2484
2485
2486
2487
2488
2489
2490
2491
2492
2493
2494
2495
2496
2497
2498
2499
2500
2501
2502
2503
2504
2505
2506
2507
2508
2509
2510
2511
2512
2513
2514
2515
2516
2517
2518
2519
2520
2521
2522
2523
2524
2525
2526
2527
2528
2529
2530
2531
2532
2533
2534
2535
2536
2537
2538
2539
2540
2541
2542
2543
2544
2545
2546
2547
2548
2549
2550
2551
2552
2553
2554
2555
2556
2557
2558
2559
2560
2561
2562
2563
2564
2565
2566
2567
2568
2569
2570
2571
2572
2573
2574
2575
2576
2577
2578
2579
2580
2581
2582
2583
2584
2585
2586
2587
2588
2589
2590
2591
2592
2593
2594
2595
2596
2597
2598
2599
2600
2601
2602
2603
2604
2605
2606
2607
2608
2609
2610
2611
2612
2613
2614
2615
2616
2617
2618
2619
2620
2621
2622
2623
2624
2625
2626
2627
2628
2629
2630
2631
2632
2633
2634
2635
2636
2637
2638
2639
2640
2641
2642
2643
2644
2645
2646
2647
2648
2649
2650
2651
2652
2653
2654
2655
2656
2657
2658
2659
2660
2661
2662
2663
2664
2665
2666
2667
2668
2669
2670
2671
2672
2673
2674
2675
2676
2677
2678
2679
2680
2681
2682
2683
2684
2685
2686
2687
2688
2689
2690
2691
2692
2693
2694
2695
2696
2697
2698
2699
2700
2701
2702
2703
2704
2705
2706
2707
2708
2709
2710
2711
2712
2713
2714
2715
2716
2717
2718
2719
2720
2721
2722
2723
2724
2725
2726
2727
2728
2729
2730
2731
2732
2733
2734
2735
2736
2737
2738
2739
2740
2741
2742
2743
2744
2745
2746
2747
2748
2749
2750
2751
2752
2753
2754
2755
2756
2757
2758
2759
2760
2761
2762
2763
2764
2765
2766
2767
2768
2769
2770
2771
2772
2773
2774
2775
2776
2777
2778
2779
2780
2781
2782
2783
2784
2785
2786
2787
2788
2789
2790
2791
2792
2793
2794
2795
2796
2797
2798
2799
2800
2801
2802
2803
2804
2805
2806
2807
2808
2809
2810
2811
2812
2813
2814
2815
2816
2817
2818
2819
2820
2821
2822
2823
2824
2825
2826
2827
2828
2829
2830
2831
2832
2833
2834
2835
2836
2837
2838
2839
2840
2841
2842
2843
2844
2845
2846
2847
2848
2849
2850
2851
2852
2853
2854
2855
2856
2857
2858
2859
2860
2861
2862
2863
2864
2865
2866
2867
2868
2869
2870
2871
2872
2873
2874
2875
2876
2877
2878
2879
2880
2881
2882
2883
2884
2885
2886
2887
2888
2889
2890
2891
2892
2893
2894
2895
2896
2897
2898
2899
2900
2901
2902
2903
2904
2905
2906
2907
2908
2909
2910
2911
2912
2913
2914
2915
2916
2917
2918
2919
2920
2921
2922
2923
2924
2925
2926
2927
2928
2929
2930
2931
2932
2933
2934
2935
2936
2937
2938
2939
2940
2941
2942
2943
2944
2945
2946
2947
2948
2949
2950
2951
2952
2953
2954
2955
2956
2957
2958
2959
2960
2961
2962
2963
2964
2965
2966
2967
2968
2969
2970
2971
2972
2973
2974
2975
2976
2977
2978
2979
2980
2981
2982
2983
2984
2985
2986
2987
2988
2989
2990
2991
2992
2993
2994
2995
2996
2997
2998
2999
3000
3001
3002
3003
3004
3005
3006
3007
3008
3009
3010
3011
3012
3013
3014
3015
3016
3017
3018
3019
3020
3021
3022
3023
3024
3025
3026
3027
3028
3029
3030
3031
3032
3033
3034
3035
3036
3037
3038
3039
3040
3041
3042
3043
3044
3045
3046
3047
3048
3049
3050
3051
3052
3053
3054
3055
3056
3057
3058
3059
3060
3061
3062
3063
3064
3065
3066
3067
3068
3069
3070
3071
3072
3073
3074
3075
3076
3077
3078
3079
3080
3081
3082
3083
3084
3085
3086
3087
3088
3089
3090
3091
3092
3093
3094
3095
3096
3097
3098
3099
3100
3101
3102
3103
3104
3105
3106
3107
3108
3109
3110
3111
3112
3113
3114
3115
3116
3117
3118
3119
3120
3121
3122
3123
3124
3125
3126
3127
3128
3129
3130
3131
3132
3133
3134
3135
3136
3137
3138
3139
3140
3141
3142
3143
3144
3145
3146
3147
3148
3149
3150
3151
3152
3153
3154
3155
3156
3157
3158
3159
3160
3161
3162
3163
3164
3165
3166
3167
3168
3169
3170
3171
3172
3173
3174
3175
3176
3177
3178
3179
3180
3181
3182
3183
3184
3185
3186
3187
3188
3189
3190
3191
3192
3193
3194
3195
3196
3197
3198
3199
3200
3201
3202
3203
3204
3205
3206
3207
3208
3209
3210
3211
3212
3213
3214
3215
3216
3217
3218
3219
3220
3221
3222
3223
3224
3225
3226
3227
3228
3229
3230
3231
3232
3233
3234
3235
3236
3237
3238
3239
3240
3241
3242
3243
3244
3245
3246
3247
3248
3249
3250
3251
3252
3253
3254
3255
3256
3257
3258
3259
3260
3261
3262
3263
3264
3265
3266
3267
3268
3269
3270
3271
3272
3273
3274
3275
3276
3277
3278
3279
3280
3281
3282
3283
3284
3285
3286
3287
3288
3289
3290
3291
3292
3293
3294
3295
3296
3297
3298
3299
3300
3301
3302
3303
3304
3305
3306
3307
3308
3309
3310
3311
3312
3313
3314
3315
3316
3317
3318
3319
3320
3321
3322
3323
3324
3325
3326
3327
3328
3329
3330
3331
3332
3333
3334
3335
3336
3337
3338
3339
3340
3341
3342
3343
3344
3345
3346
3347
3348
3349
3350
3351
3352
3353
3354
3355
3356
3357
3358
3359
3360
3361
3362
3363
3364
3365
3366
3367
3368
3369
3370
3371
3372
3373
3374
3375
3376
3377
3378
3379
3380
3381
3382
3383
3384
3385
3386
3387
3388
3389
3390
3391
3392
3393
3394
3395
3396
3397
3398
3399
3400
3401
3402
3403
3404
3405
3406
3407
3408
3409
3410
3411
3412
3413
3414
3415
3416
3417
3418
3419
3420
3421
3422
3423
3424
3425
3426
3427
3428
3429
3430
3431
3432
3433
3434
3435
3436
3437
3438
3439
3440
3441
3442
3443
3444
3445
3446
3447
3448
3449
3450
3451
3452
3453
3454
3455
3456
3457
3458
3459
3460
3461
3462
3463
3464
3465
3466
3467
3468
3469
3470
3471
3472
3473
3474
3475
3476
3477
3478
3479
3480
3481
3482
3483
3484
3485
3486
3487
3488
3489
3490
3491
3492
3493
3494
3495
3496
3497
3498
3499
3500
3501
3502
3503
3504
3505
3506
3507
3508
3509
3510
3511
3512
3513
3514
3515
3516
3517
3518
3519
3520
3521
3522
3523
3524
3525
3526
3527
3528
3529
3530
3531
3532
3533
3534
3535
3536
3537
3538
3539
3540
3541
3542
3543
3544
3545
3546
3547
3548
3549
3550
3551
3552
3553
3554
3555
3556
3557
3558
3559
3560
3561
3562
3563
3564
3565
3566
3567
3568
3569
3570
3571
3572
3573
3574
3575
3576
3577
3578
3579
3580
3581
3582
3583
3584
3585
3586
3587
3588
3589
3590
3591
3592
3593
3594
3595
3596
3597
3598
3599
3600
3601
3602
3603
3604
3605
3606
3607
3608
3609
3610
3611
3612
3613
3614
3615
3616
3617
3618
3619
3620
3621
3622
3623
3624
3625
3626
3627
3628
3629
3630
3631
3632
3633
3634
3635
3636
3637
3638
3639
3640
3641
3642
3643
3644
3645
3646
3647
3648
3649
3650
3651
3652
3653
3654
3655
3656
3657
3658
3659
3660
3661
3662
3663
3664
3665
3666
3667
3668
3669
3670
3671
3672
3673
3674
3675
3676
3677
3678
3679
3680
3681
3682
3683
3684
3685
3686
3687
3688
3689
3690
3691
3692
3693
3694
3695
3696
3697
3698
3699
3700
3701
3702
3703
3704
3705
3706
3707
3708
3709
3710
3711
3712
3713
3714
3715
3716
3717
3718
3719
3720
3721
3722
3723
3724
3725
3726
3727
3728
3729
3730
3731
3732
3733
3734
3735
3736
3737
3738
3739
3740
3741
3742
3743
3744
3745
3746
3747
3748
3749
3750
3751
3752
3753
3754
3755
3756
3757
3758
3759
3760
3761
3762
3763
3764
3765
3766
3767
3768
3769
3770
3771
3772
3773
3774
3775
3776
3777
3778
3779
3780
3781
3782
3783
3784
3785
3786
3787
3788
3789
3790
3791
3792
3793
3794
3795
3796
3797
3798
3799
3800
3801
3802
3803
3804
3805
3806
3807
3808
3809
3810
3811
3812
3813
3814
3815
3816
3817
3818
3819
3820
3821
3822
3823
3824
3825
3826
3827
3828
3829
3830
3831
3832
3833
3834
3835
3836
3837
3838
3839
3840
3841
3842
3843
3844
3845
3846
3847
3848
3849
3850
3851
3852
3853
3854
3855
3856
3857
3858
3859
3860
3861
3862
3863
3864
3865
3866
3867
3868
3869
3870
3871
3872
3873
3874
3875
3876
3877
3878
3879
3880
3881
3882
3883
3884
3885
3886
3887
3888
3889
3890
3891
3892
3893
3894
3895
3896
3897
3898
3899
3900
3901
3902
3903
3904
3905
3906
3907
3908
3909
3910
3911
3912
3913
3914
3915
3916
3917
3918
3919
3920
3921
3922
3923
3924
3925
3926
3927
3928
3929
3930
3931
3932
3933
3934
3935
3936
3937
3938
3939
3940
3941
3942
3943
3944
3945
3946
3947
3948
3949
3950
3951
3952
3953
3954
3955
3956
3957
3958
3959
3960
3961
3962
3963
3964
3965
3966
3967
3968
3969
3970
3971
3972
3973
3974
3975
3976
3977
3978
3979
3980
3981
3982
3983
3984
3985
3986
3987
3988
3989
3990
3991
3992
3993
3994
3995
3996
3997
3998
3999
4000
4001
4002
4003
4004
4005
4006
4007
4008
4009
4010
4011
4012
4013
4014
4015
4016
4017
4018
4019
4020
4021
4022
4023
4024
4025
4026
4027
4028
4029
4030
4031
4032
4033
4034
4035
4036
4037
4038
4039
4040
4041
4042
4043
4044
4045
4046
4047
4048
4049
4050
4051
4052
4053
4054
4055
4056
4057
4058
4059
4060
4061
4062
4063
4064
4065
4066
4067
4068
4069
4070
4071
4072
4073
4074
4075
4076
4077
4078
4079
4080
4081
4082
4083
4084
4085
4086
4087
4088
4089
4090
4091
4092
4093
4094
4095
4096
4097
4098
4099
4100
4101
4102
4103
4104
4105
4106
4107
4108
4109
4110
4111
4112
4113
4114
4115
4116
4117
4118
4119
4120
4121
4122
4123
4124
4125
4126
4127
4128
4129
4130
4131
4132
4133
4134
4135
4136
4137
4138
4139
4140
4141
4142
4143
4144
4145
4146
4147
4148
4149
4150
4151
4152
4153
4154
4155
4156
4157
4158
4159
4160
4161
4162
4163
4164
4165
4166
4167
4168
4169
4170
4171
4172
4173
4174
4175
4176
4177
4178
4179
4180
4181
4182
4183
4184
4185
4186
4187
4188
4189
4190
4191
4192
4193
4194
4195
4196
4197
4198
4199
4200
4201
4202
4203
4204
4205
4206
4207
4208
4209
4210
4211
4212
4213
4214
4215
4216
4217
4218
4219
4220
4221
4222
4223
4224
4225
4226
4227
4228
4229
4230
4231
4232
4233
4234
4235
4236
4237
4238
4239
4240
4241
4242
4243
4244
4245
4246
4247
4248
4249
4250
4251
4252
4253
4254
4255
4256
4257
4258
4259
4260
4261
4262
4263
4264
4265
4266
4267
4268
4269
4270
4271
4272
4273
4274
4275
4276
4277
4278
4279
4280
4281
4282
4283
4284
4285
4286
4287
4288
4289
4290
4291
4292
4293
4294
4295
4296
4297
4298
4299
4300
4301
4302
4303
4304
4305
4306
4307
4308
4309
4310
4311
4312
4313
4314
4315
4316
4317
4318
4319
4320
4321
4322
4323
4324
4325
4326
4327
4328
4329
4330
4331
4332
4333
4334
4335
4336
4337
4338
4339
4340
4341
4342
4343
4344
4345
4346
4347
4348
4349
4350
4351
4352
4353
4354
4355
4356
4357
4358
4359
4360
4361
4362
4363
4364
4365
4366
4367
4368
4369
4370
4371
4372
4373
4374
4375
4376
4377
4378
4379
4380
4381
4382
4383
4384
4385
4386
4387
4388
4389
4390
4391
4392
4393
4394
4395
4396
4397
4398
4399
4400
4401
4402
4403
4404
4405
4406
4407
4408
4409
4410
4411
4412
4413
4414
4415
4416
4417
4418
4419
4420
4421
4422
4423
4424
4425
4426
4427
4428
4429
4430
4431
4432
4433
4434
4435
4436
4437
4438
4439
4440
4441
4442
4443
4444
4445
4446
4447
4448
4449
4450
4451
4452
4453
4454
4455
4456
4457
4458
4459
4460
4461
4462
4463
4464
4465
4466
4467
4468
4469
4470
4471
4472
4473
4474
4475
4476
4477
4478
4479
4480
4481
4482
4483
4484
4485
4486
4487
4488
4489
4490
4491
4492
4493
4494
4495
4496
4497
4498
4499
4500
4501
4502
4503
4504
4505
4506
4507
4508
4509
4510
4511
4512
4513
4514
4515
4516
4517
4518
4519
4520
4521
4522
4523
4524
4525
4526
4527
4528
4529
4530
4531
4532
4533
4534
4535
4536
4537
4538
4539
4540
4541
4542
4543
4544
4545
4546
4547
4548
4549
4550
4551
4552
4553
4554
4555
4556
4557
4558
4559
4560
4561
4562
4563
4564
4565
4566
4567
4568
4569
4570
4571
4572
4573
4574
4575
4576
4577
4578
4579
4580
4581
4582
4583
4584
4585
4586
4587
4588
4589
4590
4591
4592
4593
4594
4595
4596
4597
4598
4599
4600
4601
4602
4603
4604
4605
4606
4607
4608
4609
4610
4611
4612
4613
4614
4615
4616
4617
4618
4619
4620
4621
4622
4623
4624
4625
4626
4627
4628
4629
4630
4631
4632
4633
4634
4635
4636
4637
4638
4639
4640
4641
4642
4643
4644
4645
4646
4647
4648
4649
4650
4651
4652
4653
4654
4655
4656
4657
4658
4659
4660
4661
4662
4663
4664
4665
4666
4667
4668
4669
4670
4671
4672
4673
4674
4675
4676
4677
4678
4679
4680
4681
4682
4683
4684
4685
4686
4687
4688
4689
4690
4691
4692
4693
4694
4695
4696
4697
4698
4699
4700
4701
4702
4703
4704
4705
4706
4707
4708
4709
4710
4711
4712
4713
4714
4715
4716
4717
4718
4719
4720
4721
4722
4723
4724
4725
4726
4727
4728
4729
4730
4731
4732
4733
4734
4735
4736
4737
4738
4739
4740
4741
4742
4743
4744
4745
4746
4747
4748
4749
4750
4751
4752
4753
4754
4755
4756
4757
4758
4759
4760
4761
4762
4763
4764
4765
4766
4767
4768
4769
4770
4771
4772
4773
4774
4775
4776
4777
4778
4779
4780
4781
4782
4783
4784
4785
4786
4787
4788
4789
4790
4791
4792
4793
4794
4795
4796
4797
4798
4799
4800
4801
4802
4803
4804
4805
4806
4807
4808
4809
4810
4811
4812
4813
4814
4815
4816
4817
4818
4819
4820
4821
4822
4823
4824
4825
4826
4827
4828
4829
4830
4831
4832
4833
4834
4835
4836
4837
4838
4839
4840
4841
4842
4843
4844
4845
4846
4847
4848
4849
4850
4851
4852
4853
4854
4855
4856
4857
4858
4859
4860
4861
4862
4863
4864
4865
4866
4867
4868
4869
4870
4871
4872
4873
4874
4875
4876
4877
4878
4879
4880
4881
4882
4883
4884
4885
4886
4887
4888
4889
4890
4891
4892
4893
4894
4895
4896
4897
4898
4899
4900
4901
4902
4903
4904
4905
4906
4907
4908
4909
4910
4911
4912
4913
4914
4915
4916
4917
4918
4919
4920
4921
4922
4923
4924
4925
4926
4927
4928
4929
4930
4931
4932
4933
4934
4935
4936
4937
4938
4939
4940
4941
4942
4943
4944
4945
4946
4947
4948
4949
4950
4951
4952
4953
4954
4955
4956
4957
4958
4959
4960
4961
4962
4963
4964
4965
4966
4967
4968
4969
4970
4971
4972
4973
4974
4975
4976
4977
4978
4979
4980
4981
4982
4983
4984
4985
4986
4987
4988
4989
4990
4991
4992
4993
4994
4995
4996
4997
4998
4999
5000
5001
5002
5003
5004
5005
5006
5007
5008
5009
5010
5011
5012
5013
5014
5015
5016
5017
5018
5019
5020
5021
5022
5023
5024
5025
5026
5027
5028
5029
5030
5031
5032
5033
5034
5035
5036
5037
5038
5039
5040
5041
5042
5043
5044
5045
5046
5047
5048
5049
5050
5051
5052
5053
5054
5055
5056
5057
5058
5059
5060
5061
5062
5063
5064
5065
5066
5067
5068
5069
5070
5071
5072
5073
5074
5075
5076
5077
5078
5079
5080
5081
5082
5083
5084
5085
5086
5087
5088
5089
5090
5091
5092
5093
5094
5095
5096
5097
5098
5099
5100
5101
5102
5103
5104
5105
5106
5107
5108
5109
5110
5111
5112
5113
5114
5115
5116
5117
5118
5119
5120
5121
5122
5123
5124
5125
5126
5127
5128
5129
5130
5131
5132
5133
5134
5135
5136
5137
5138
5139
5140
5141
5142
5143
5144
5145
5146
5147
5148
5149
5150
5151
5152
5153
5154
5155
5156
5157
5158
5159
5160
5161
5162
5163
5164
5165
5166
5167
5168
5169
5170
5171
5172
5173
5174
5175
5176
5177
5178
5179
5180
5181
5182
5183
5184
5185
5186
5187
5188
5189
5190
5191
5192
5193
5194
5195
5196
5197
5198
5199
5200
5201
5202
5203
5204
5205
5206
5207
5208
5209
5210
5211
5212
5213
5214
5215
5216
5217
5218
5219
5220
5221
5222
5223
5224
5225
5226
5227
5228
5229
5230
5231
5232
5233
5234
5235
5236
5237
5238
5239
5240
5241
5242
5243
5244
5245
5246
5247
5248
5249
5250
5251
5252
5253
5254
5255
5256
5257
5258
5259
5260
5261
5262
5263
5264
5265
5266
5267
5268
5269
5270
5271
5272
5273
5274
5275
5276
5277
5278
5279
5280
5281
5282
5283
5284
5285
5286
5287
5288
5289
5290
5291
5292
5293
5294
5295
5296
5297
5298
5299
5300
5301
5302
5303
5304
5305
5306
5307
5308
5309
5310
5311
5312
5313
5314
5315
5316
5317
5318
5319
5320
5321
5322
5323
5324
5325
5326
5327
5328
5329
5330
5331
5332
5333
5334
5335
5336
5337
5338
5339
5340
5341
5342
5343
5344
5345
5346
5347
5348
5349
5350
5351
5352
5353
5354
5355
5356
5357
5358
5359
5360
5361
5362
5363
5364
5365
5366
5367
5368
5369
5370
5371
5372
5373
5374
5375
5376
5377
5378
5379
5380
5381
5382
5383
5384
5385
5386
5387
5388
5389
5390
5391
5392
5393
5394
5395
5396
5397
5398
5399
5400
5401
5402
5403
5404
5405
5406
5407
5408
5409
5410
5411
5412
5413
5414
5415
5416
5417
5418
5419
5420
5421
5422
5423
5424
5425
5426
5427
5428
5429
5430
5431
5432
5433
5434
5435
5436
5437
5438
5439
5440
5441
5442
5443
5444
5445
5446
5447
5448
5449
5450
5451
5452
5453
5454
5455
5456
5457
5458
5459
5460
5461
5462
5463
5464
5465
5466
5467
5468
5469
5470
5471
5472
5473
5474
5475
5476
5477
5478
5479
5480
5481
5482
5483
5484
5485
5486
5487
5488
5489
5490
5491
5492
5493
5494
5495
5496
5497
5498
5499
5500
5501
5502
5503
5504
5505
5506
5507
5508
5509
5510
5511
5512
5513
5514
5515
5516
5517
5518
5519
5520
5521
5522
5523
5524
5525
5526
5527
5528
5529
5530
5531
5532
5533
5534
5535
5536
5537
5538
5539
5540
5541
5542
5543
5544
5545
5546
5547
5548
5549
5550
5551
5552
5553
5554
5555
5556
5557
5558
5559
5560
5561
5562
5563
5564
5565
5566
5567
5568
5569
5570
5571
5572
5573
5574
5575
5576
5577
5578
5579
5580
5581
5582
5583
5584
5585
5586
5587
5588
5589
5590
5591
5592
5593
5594
5595
5596
5597
5598
5599
5600
5601
5602
5603
5604
5605
5606
5607
5608
5609
5610
5611
5612
5613
5614
5615
5616
5617
5618
5619
5620
5621
5622
5623
5624
5625
5626
5627
5628
5629
5630
5631
5632
5633
5634
5635
5636
5637
5638
5639
5640
5641
5642
5643
5644
5645
5646
5647
5648
5649
5650
5651
5652
5653
5654
5655
5656
5657
5658
5659
5660
5661
5662
5663
5664
5665
5666
5667
5668
5669
5670
5671
5672
5673
5674
5675
5676
5677
5678
5679
5680
5681
5682
5683
5684
5685
5686
5687
5688
5689
5690
5691
5692
5693
5694
5695
5696
5697
5698
5699
5700
5701
5702
5703
5704
5705
5706
5707
5708
5709
5710
5711
5712
5713
5714
5715
5716
5717
5718
5719
5720
5721
5722
5723
5724
5725
5726
5727
5728
5729
5730
5731
5732
5733
5734
5735
5736
5737
5738
5739
5740
5741
5742
5743
5744
5745
5746
5747
5748
5749
5750
5751
5752
5753
5754
5755
5756
5757
5758
5759
5760
5761
5762
5763
5764
5765
5766
5767
5768
5769
5770
5771
5772
5773
5774
5775
5776
5777
5778
5779
5780
5781
5782
5783
5784
5785
5786
5787
5788
5789
5790
5791
5792
5793
5794
5795
5796
5797
5798
5799
5800
5801
5802
5803
5804
5805
5806
5807
5808
5809
5810
5811
5812
5813
5814
5815
5816
5817
5818
5819
5820
5821
5822
5823
5824
5825
5826
5827
5828
5829
5830
5831
5832
5833
5834
5835
5836
5837
5838
5839
5840
5841
5842
5843
5844
5845
5846
5847
5848
5849
5850
5851
5852
5853
5854
5855
5856
5857
5858
5859
5860
5861
5862
5863
5864
5865
5866
5867
5868
5869
5870
5871
5872
5873
5874
5875
5876
5877
5878
5879
5880
5881
5882
5883
5884
5885
5886
5887
5888
5889
5890
5891
5892
5893
5894
5895
5896
5897
5898
5899
5900
5901
5902
5903
5904
5905
5906
5907
5908
5909
5910
5911
5912
5913
5914
5915
5916
5917
5918
5919
5920
5921
5922
5923
5924
5925
5926
5927
5928
5929
5930
5931
5932
5933
5934
5935
5936
5937
5938
5939
5940
5941
5942
5943
5944
5945
5946
5947
5948
5949
5950
5951
5952
5953
5954
5955
5956
5957
5958
5959
5960
5961
5962
5963
5964
5965
5966
5967
5968
5969
5970
5971
5972
5973
5974
5975
5976
5977
5978
5979
5980
5981
5982
5983
5984
5985
5986
5987
5988
5989
5990
5991
5992
5993
5994
5995
5996
5997
5998
5999
6000
6001
6002
6003
6004
6005
6006
6007
6008
6009
6010
6011
6012
6013
6014
6015
6016
6017
6018
6019
6020
6021
6022
6023
6024
6025
6026
6027
6028
6029
6030
6031
6032
6033
6034
6035
6036
6037
6038
6039
6040
6041
6042
6043
6044
6045
6046
6047
6048
6049
6050
6051
6052
6053
6054
6055
6056
6057
6058
6059
6060
6061
6062
6063
6064
6065
6066
6067
6068
6069
6070
6071
6072
6073
6074
6075
6076
6077
6078
6079
6080
6081
6082
6083
6084
6085
6086
6087
6088
6089
6090
6091
6092
6093
6094
6095
6096
6097
6098
6099
6100
6101
6102
6103
6104
6105
6106
6107
6108
6109
6110
6111
6112
6113
6114
6115
6116
6117
6118
6119
6120
6121
6122
6123
6124
6125
6126
6127
6128
6129
6130
6131
6132
6133
6134
6135
6136
6137
6138
6139
6140
6141
6142
6143
6144
6145
6146
6147
6148
6149
6150
6151
6152
6153
6154
6155
6156
6157
6158
6159
6160
6161
6162
6163
6164
6165
6166
6167
6168
6169
6170
6171
6172
6173
6174
6175
6176
6177
6178
6179
6180
6181
6182
6183
6184
6185
6186
6187
6188
6189
6190
6191
6192
6193
6194
6195
6196
6197
6198
6199
6200
6201
6202
6203
6204
6205
6206
6207
6208
6209
6210
6211
6212
6213
6214
6215
6216
6217
6218
6219
6220
6221
6222
6223
6224
6225
6226
6227
6228
6229
6230
6231
6232
6233
6234
6235
6236
6237
6238
6239
6240
6241
6242
6243
6244
6245
6246
6247
6248
6249
6250
6251
6252
6253
6254
6255
6256
6257
6258
6259
6260
6261
6262
6263
6264
6265
6266
6267
6268
6269
6270
6271
6272
6273
6274
6275
6276
6277
6278
6279
6280
6281
6282
6283
6284
6285
6286
6287
6288
6289
6290
6291
6292
6293
6294
6295
6296
6297
6298
6299
6300
6301
6302
6303
6304
6305
6306
6307
6308
6309
6310
6311
6312
6313
6314
6315
6316
6317
6318
6319
6320
6321
6322
6323
6324
6325
6326
6327
6328
6329
6330
6331
6332
6333
6334
6335
6336
6337
6338
6339
6340
6341
6342
6343
6344
6345
6346
6347
6348
6349
6350
6351
6352
6353
6354
6355
6356
6357
6358
6359
6360
6361
6362
6363
6364
6365
6366
6367
6368
6369
6370
6371
6372
6373
6374
6375
6376
6377
6378
6379
6380
6381
6382
6383
6384
6385
6386
6387
6388
6389
6390
6391
6392
6393
6394
6395
6396
6397
6398
6399
6400
6401
6402
6403
6404
6405
6406
6407
6408
6409
6410
6411
6412
6413
6414
6415
6416
6417
6418
6419
6420
6421
6422
6423
6424
6425
6426
6427
6428
6429
6430
6431
6432
6433
6434
6435
6436
6437
6438
6439
6440
6441
6442
6443
6444
6445
6446
6447
6448
6449
6450
6451
6452
6453
6454
6455
6456
6457
6458
6459
6460
6461
6462
6463
6464
6465
6466
6467
6468
6469
6470
6471
6472
6473
6474
6475
6476
6477
6478
6479
6480
6481
6482
6483
6484
6485
6486
6487
6488
6489
6490
6491
6492
6493
6494
6495
6496
6497
6498
6499
6500
6501
6502
6503
6504
6505
6506
6507
6508
6509
6510
6511
6512
6513
6514
6515
6516
6517
6518
6519
6520
6521
6522
6523
6524
6525
6526
6527
6528
6529
6530
6531
6532
6533
6534
6535
6536
6537
6538
6539
6540
6541
6542
6543
6544
6545
6546
6547
6548
6549
6550
6551
6552
6553
6554
6555
6556
6557
6558
6559
6560
6561
6562
6563
6564
6565
6566
6567
6568
6569
6570
6571
6572
6573
6574
6575
6576
6577
6578
6579
6580
6581
6582
6583
6584
6585
6586
6587
6588
6589
6590
6591
6592
6593
6594
6595
6596
6597
6598
6599
6600
6601
6602
6603
6604
6605
6606
6607
6608
6609
6610
6611
6612
6613
6614
6615
6616
6617
6618
6619
6620
6621
6622
6623
6624
6625
6626
6627
6628
6629
6630
6631
6632
6633
6634
6635
6636
6637
6638
6639
6640
6641
6642
6643
6644
6645
6646
6647
6648
6649
6650
6651
6652
6653
6654
6655
6656
6657
6658
6659
6660
6661
6662
6663
6664
6665
6666
6667
6668
6669
6670
6671
6672
6673
6674
6675
6676
6677
6678
6679
6680
6681
6682
6683
6684
6685
6686
6687
6688
6689
6690
6691
6692
6693
6694
6695
6696
6697
6698
6699
6700
6701
6702
6703
6704
6705
6706
6707
6708
6709
6710
6711
6712
6713
6714
6715
6716
6717
6718
6719
6720
6721
6722
6723
6724
6725
6726
6727
6728
6729
6730
6731
6732
6733
6734
6735
6736
6737
6738
6739
6740
6741
6742
6743
6744
6745
6746
6747
6748
6749
6750
6751
6752
6753
6754
6755
6756
6757
6758
6759
6760
6761
6762
6763
6764
6765
6766
6767
6768
6769
6770
6771
6772
6773
6774
6775
6776
6777
6778
6779
6780
6781
6782
6783
6784
6785
6786
6787
6788
6789
6790
6791
6792
6793
6794
6795
6796
6797
6798
6799
6800
6801
6802
6803
6804
6805
6806
6807
6808
6809
6810
6811
6812
6813
6814
6815
6816
6817
6818
6819
6820
6821
6822
6823
6824
6825
6826
6827
6828
6829
6830
6831
6832
6833
6834
6835
6836
6837
6838
6839
6840
6841
6842
6843
6844
6845
6846
6847
6848
6849
6850
6851
6852
6853
6854
6855
6856
6857
6858
6859
6860
6861
6862
6863
6864
6865
6866
6867
6868
6869
6870
6871
6872
6873
6874
6875
6876
6877
6878
6879
6880
6881
6882
6883
6884
6885
6886
6887
6888
6889
6890
6891
6892
6893
6894
6895
6896
6897
6898
6899
6900
6901
6902
6903
6904
6905
6906
6907
6908
6909
6910
6911
6912
6913
6914
6915
6916
6917
6918
6919
6920
6921
6922
6923
6924
6925
6926
6927
6928
6929
6930
6931
6932
6933
6934
6935
6936
6937
6938
6939
6940
6941
6942
6943
6944
6945
6946
6947
6948
6949
6950
6951
6952
6953
6954
6955
6956
6957
6958
6959
6960
6961
6962
6963
6964
6965
6966
6967
6968
6969
6970
6971
6972
6973
6974
6975
6976
6977
6978
6979
6980
6981
6982
6983
6984
6985
6986
6987
6988
6989
6990
6991
6992
6993
6994
6995
6996
6997
6998
6999
7000
7001
7002
7003
7004
7005
7006
7007
7008
7009
7010
7011
7012
7013
7014
7015
7016
7017
7018
7019
7020
7021
7022
7023
7024
7025
7026
7027
7028
7029
7030
7031
7032
7033
7034
7035
7036
7037
7038
7039
7040
7041
7042
7043
7044
7045
7046
7047
7048
7049
7050
7051
7052
7053
7054
7055
7056
7057
7058
7059
7060
7061
7062
7063
7064
7065
7066
7067
7068
7069
7070
7071
7072
7073
7074
7075
7076
7077
7078
7079
7080
7081
7082
7083
7084
7085
7086
7087
7088
7089
7090
7091
7092
7093
7094
7095
7096
7097
7098
7099
7100
7101
7102
7103
7104
7105
7106
7107
7108
7109
7110
7111
7112
7113
7114
7115
7116
7117
7118
7119
7120
7121
7122
7123
7124
7125
7126
7127
7128
7129
7130
7131
7132
7133
7134
7135
7136
7137
7138
7139
7140
7141
7142
7143
7144
7145
7146
7147
7148
7149
7150
7151
7152
7153
7154
7155
7156
7157
7158
7159
7160
7161
7162
7163
7164
7165
7166
7167
7168
7169
7170
7171
7172
7173
7174
7175
7176
7177
7178
7179
7180
7181
7182
7183
7184
7185
7186
7187
7188
7189
7190
7191
7192
7193
7194
7195
7196
7197
7198
7199
7200
7201
7202
7203
7204
7205
7206
7207
7208
7209
7210
7211
7212
7213
7214
7215
7216
7217
7218
7219
7220
7221
7222
7223
7224
7225
7226
7227
7228
7229
7230
7231
7232
7233
7234
7235
7236
7237
7238
7239
7240
7241
7242
7243
7244
7245
7246
7247
7248
7249
7250
7251
7252
7253
7254
7255
7256
7257
7258
7259
7260
7261
7262
7263
7264
7265
7266
7267
7268
7269
7270
7271
7272
7273
7274
7275
7276
7277
7278
7279
7280
7281
7282
7283
7284
7285
7286
7287
7288
7289
7290
7291
7292
7293
7294
7295
7296
7297
7298
7299
7300
7301
7302
7303
7304
7305
7306
7307
7308
7309
7310
7311
7312
7313
7314
7315
7316
7317
7318
7319
7320
7321
7322
7323
7324
7325
7326
7327
7328
7329
7330
7331
7332
7333
7334
7335
7336
7337
7338
7339
7340
7341
7342
7343
7344
7345
7346
7347
7348
7349
7350
7351
7352
7353
7354
7355
7356
7357
7358
7359
7360
7361
7362
7363
7364
7365
7366
7367
7368
7369
7370
7371
7372
7373
7374
7375
7376
7377
7378
7379
7380
7381
7382
7383
7384
7385
7386
7387
7388
7389
7390
7391
7392
7393
7394
7395
7396
7397
7398
7399
7400
7401
7402
7403
7404
7405
7406
7407
7408
7409
7410
7411
7412
7413
7414
7415
7416
7417
7418
7419
7420
7421
7422
7423
7424
7425
7426
7427
7428
7429
7430
7431
7432
7433
7434
7435
7436
7437
7438
7439
7440
7441
7442
7443
7444
7445
7446
7447
7448
7449
7450
7451
7452
7453
7454
7455
7456
7457
7458
7459
7460
7461
7462
7463
7464
7465
7466
7467
7468
7469
7470
7471
7472
7473
7474
7475
7476
7477
7478
7479
7480
7481
7482
7483
7484
7485
7486
7487
7488
7489
7490
7491
7492
7493
7494
7495
7496
7497
7498
7499
7500
7501
7502
7503
7504
7505
7506
7507
7508
7509
7510
7511
7512
7513
7514
7515
7516
7517
7518
7519
7520
7521
7522
7523
7524
7525
7526
7527
7528
7529
7530
7531
7532
7533
7534
7535
7536
7537
7538
7539
7540
7541
7542
7543
7544
7545
7546
7547
7548
7549
7550
7551
7552
7553
7554
7555
7556
7557
7558
7559
7560
7561
7562
7563
7564
7565
7566
7567
7568
7569
7570
7571
7572
7573
7574
7575
7576
7577
7578
7579
7580
7581
7582
7583
7584
7585
7586
7587
7588
7589
7590
7591
7592
7593
7594
7595
7596
7597
7598
7599
7600
7601
7602
7603
7604
7605
7606
7607
7608
7609
7610
7611
7612
7613
7614
7615
7616
7617
7618
7619
7620
7621
7622
7623
7624
7625
7626
7627
7628
7629
7630
7631
7632
7633
7634
7635
7636
7637
7638
7639
7640
7641
7642
7643
7644
7645
7646
7647
7648
7649
7650
7651
7652
7653
7654
7655
7656
7657
7658
7659
7660
7661
7662
7663
7664
7665
7666
7667
7668
7669
7670
7671
7672
7673
7674
7675
7676
7677
7678
7679
7680
7681
7682
7683
7684
7685
7686
7687
7688
7689
7690
7691
7692
7693
7694
7695
7696
7697
7698
7699
7700
7701
7702
7703
7704
7705
7706
7707
7708
7709
7710
7711
7712
7713
7714
7715
7716
7717
7718
7719
7720
7721
7722
7723
7724
7725
7726
7727
7728
7729
7730
7731
7732
7733
7734
7735
7736
7737
7738
7739
7740
7741
7742
7743
7744
7745
7746
7747
7748
7749
7750
7751
7752
7753
7754
7755
7756
7757
7758
7759
7760
7761
7762
7763
7764
7765
7766
7767
7768
7769
7770
7771
7772
7773
7774
7775
7776
7777
7778
7779
7780
7781
7782
7783
7784
7785
7786
7787
7788
7789
7790
7791
7792
7793
7794
7795
7796
7797
7798
7799
7800
7801
7802
7803
7804
7805
7806
7807
7808
7809
7810
7811
7812
7813
7814
7815
7816
7817
7818
7819
7820
7821
7822
7823
7824
7825
7826
7827
7828
7829
7830
7831
7832
7833
7834
7835
7836
7837
7838
7839
7840
7841
7842
7843
7844
7845
7846
7847
7848
7849
7850
7851
7852
7853
7854
7855
7856
7857
7858
7859
7860
7861
7862
7863
7864
7865
7866
7867
7868
7869
7870
7871
7872
7873
7874
7875
7876
7877
7878
7879
7880
7881
7882
7883
7884
7885
7886
7887
7888
7889
7890
7891
7892
7893
7894
7895
7896
7897
7898
7899
7900
7901
7902
7903
7904
7905
7906
7907
7908
7909
7910
|
*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 78462 ***
HISTORY
OF
RECENT DISCOVERIES AT CYRENE.
[Illustration: FRONTISPIECE
EASTERN END OF THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS OF CYRENE
E. A. Porcher, del., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
HISTORY
OF THE
RECENT DISCOVERIES AT CYRENE,
MADE DURING AN
EXPEDITION TO THE CYRENAICA IN 1860-61,
UNDER THE AUSPICES OF HER MAJESTY’S GOVERNMENT.
BY
CAPTAIN R. MURDOCH SMITH, R.E.
AND
COMMANDER E. A. PORCHER. R.N.
DAY & SON,
LITHOGRAPHERS TO THE QUEEN AND TO H.R.H. THE PRINCE OF WALES,
6, GATE STREET, LINCOLN’S INN FIELDS, LONDON, W.C.
1864.
[_All rights of Translation and Reproduction are reserved._]
TO
HIS GRACE THE DUKE OF SOMERSET, K.G.
FIRST LORD OF THE ADMIRALTY,
IN ACKNOWLEDGMENT OF THE PROMPT AND VALUABLE ASSISTANCE
AFFORDED TO THE AUTHORS,
DURING THE PROSECUTION OF THEIR LABOURS,
THIS VOLUME
IS RESPECTFULLY AND GRATEFULLY DEDICATED.
PREFACE.
* * * * *
THE Cyrenaica, although bordering on the shores of the Mediterranean,
and very little removed from the most civilized nations in Europe, has
been rarely visited by travellers, either for pleasure or antiquarian
research, owing perhaps to the supposed difficulty presented by the
country itself, and by the character of the people inhabiting it.
The former, however, is not only beautiful, but fruitful. The number of
olive-trees, now entirely neglected, to be seen everywhere, shows that
at one time the inhabitants cultivated this plant to a considerable
extent, and enjoyed the advantages of superior husbandry; but this is no
longer the case, and the ground now only yields scanty crops of wheat
and barley, and indifferent pasture for the rearing of cattle, sheep,
and goats. Were the character of the people different and any authority
acknowledged amongst them, the present desolation would give place to a
different state of things; but this change can hardly at present be
expected; and so long as the sentence, passed ages ago, “his hand shall
be against every man, and every man’s hand against him,” remains
unrevoked, the same restlessness under control and indifference to all
social comfort, which now exist, will still characterize the
inhabitants. The natural beauty of the country, however, is still
unaltered, and plains and hills, well wooded in many parts, meet the eye
in every direction, and render it one of the finest provinces in
Northern Africa.
Another reason perhaps why Cyrene has not been explored so much as other
localities, is that there are few remains of its former grandeur visible
above the ground. Were the vast piles of magnificent architecture now
gathered in confused heaps on the sand-banks at Thebes and Luxor to be
seen at Cyrene, travellers, no doubt, would have made it a greater
object of attention than they have done. But all the splendour of the
ancient Cyrenaica, with few exceptions, lies buried below the surface of
the earth; and here, over the palaces of kings and the remains of former
magnificence, the Arabs pitch their tents and the camels browse.
Before commencing the narrative recorded in the following pages, it will
be interesting to mention the principal travellers who have visited the
country for scientific purposes during the last two centuries.
The first we hear of was Lemaire, who, during the time he was the French
Consul at Tripoli, explored the country in 1706, by direction of Louis
XIV. He was followed by Paul Lucas, who visited it twice, in 1710 and
1723. After him Doctor Thomas Shaw travelled, in 1738, over those parts,
as well as a considerable portion of North Africa, and left an
interesting account of his discoveries, and of the manners and customs
of the inhabitants.
A French gentleman, Monsieur Granger, a physician by profession,
accomplished the overland journey from Egypt to Cyrene in 1760, in
company with a robber chief, to whom he promised a high reward on his
return. Under this dangerous protection he copied several of the
inscriptions that were found there; but these, with his journal, were
unfortunately lost before his return to Europe. Our celebrated
Abyssinian traveller James Bruce also visited parts of the country
1768-72.
In the present century the first person who visited Cyrene was an
Italian, Doctor Cervelli. In 1812, the Pacha of Tripoli, wishing to
punish the revolt of his son, the Governor of Derna, sent an armed force
into the province, and Doctor Cervelli accompanied the expedition, and
collected during his journey some interesting information, which was
published by the French Geographical Society. A few years after, in
1817, the same Pacha despatched a second expedition against some
turbulent Arabs at Merdj (Barca), and this party was accompanied by
another Italian, Della Cella, who travelled as Physician attendant on
the Bey, and published an account of his travels, which was translated
into English in 1822; but his hurried visit did not allow him sufficient
time to collect much valuable information. Cyrene was also visited by P.
Pacifique, a missionary from Tripoli, who added some fresh information
to that given by Della Cella.
In 1820, a Prussian, General Minutoli, formed a project of making a
complete tour of the Cyrenaica, and was accompanied by savants and
artists to make his journey of greater importance. As soon as he had
arrived at the foot of Mount Catabathmus, which is situated above half-
way from Egypt, he lost three of his Europeans, and this misfortune and
the obstacles the Arabs opposed to his party so disheartened him that
he returned to Alexandria without accomplishing his object.
The ill-success of the Prussian general left the country still
insufficiently explored for scientific purposes, and this induced two
travellers, Captain Beechey and M. Pacho, to undertake the task.
Captain Beechey and his brother started from Tripoli by land, making the
circuit of the Syrtis Major, and explored the whole of the country in
1821-2, drew very correct plans, and fixed the astronomical positions of
all the principal towns, and wrote a detailed account of their travels.
A surveying vessel at the same time examined and laid down the coast-
line.
This party had hardly returned when Pacho, a French artist, visited the
country, in 1824-6, and his travels were published in Paris by M. Didot
in 1827, in a quarto volume of text, and another containing 100 well-
executed plates in folio. He was not aware, when he started, what
discoveries Captain Beechey and his brother had made, as their work was
not published for some years afterwards; and therefore it was a matter
of great regret to him to find on his return that many of his own
researches, which had cost him so much labour and trouble, had been
anticipated by his predecessors.
Since these two principal works of Captain Beechey and M. Pacho were
published, M. Delaporte, the French Consul at Tangier, has contributed
to the Geographical Society of Paris the result of his exploration, and
M. Vattier de Bourville, during the time he was French Consular Agent at
Benghazi, in 1848-9, collected a large number of vases and terra-cotta
ornaments from the tombs at that place, which are now deposited in the
Louvre, and also made a short visit to Cyrene.
The intrepid traveller Dr. Barth passed over this country before he
commenced his more hazardous expedition to Timbuctoo and the central
regions of Africa; and lastly Mr. James Hamilton, in 1855-6, who
afterwards proceeded inland from Benghazi, across part of the Sahara, to
the oases of Augila and Siwah, on his way to Egypt.
Few of the travellers just mentioned remained any time in the country,
and it was quite evident that no attempt at excavation to any extent had
ever been made before our arrival, as sculpture in excellent
preservation was found a few feet under the surface, on the most
promising sites, where people would naturally be led to commence their
researches.
The valuable works of Beechey and Pacho before mentioned have left but
little for future visitors to record, and as all the principal monuments
left standing have been accurately drawn and described, it would be
superfluous for us to go over the same ground again. The following pages
will therefore be principally devoted to an account of the excavations
that were carried on by my companion and myself and will also contain a
description of the site of Cyrene, its Necropolis, and the surrounding
country, together with a brief notice of the sculptures discovered.
The ten plates of unedited Greek inscriptions have been lithographed in
fac-simile from impressions of the originals reduced by photography, and
a selection from the sculpture has been photographed by Mr. Francis
Bedford.
In the absence of Captain Smith, who is at present professionally
employed in Persia, I take this opportunity of thanking the Government
authorities and the Trustees of the British Museum for their assistance
from the commencement of the undertaking until its close, and also to
the officers and crews of the _Assurance_ and _Melpomene_, who
cheerfully and efficiently carried out the orders of the Admiralty in
the removal of the sculpture from Cyrene to the place of embarkation.
Also to Mr. C. T. Newton for his useful advice during the time we were
in the country, and for his valuable assistance whilst these pages were
going through the press; and to Mr. W. S. W. Vaux, of the British
Museum.
E. A. PORCHER.
CONTENTS.
* * * * *
CHAPTER I.
HISTORY OF CYRENE.
Derivation of the names Cyrenaica and Pentapolis — Causes which led to
the country being colonized by a body of Dorians from Thera — Battus,
the leader of this band, first takes possession of the island of Platea,
and afterwards removes to Cyrene — Coalescence of the settlers with the
Libyans — The dynasty of the Battiadæ — Constitution drawn up by
Demonax, and granted by Battus III. — Attempt to overthrow it by his
successor, Arcesilaus III., aided by his mother Pheretime, which is
unsuccessful, and ends by his being murdered at Barca — The town is
besieged by Aryandes, Satrap of Egypt, and taken by treachery — Brutal
revenge of Pheretime on the inhabitants — Extinction of the dynasty —
Condition of the new republic, and alliance with Alexander the Great —
Becomes subject to Egypt — The names of the towns are changed — The last
king of the Egyptian dynasty, Apion, leaves the country to the Romans by
his testament, which is afterwards reduced by them to a province —
Insurrection of the Jews, and a great massacre of the Romans and
Cyrenæans — Sufferings of the population from the attacks of the Libyan
barbarians, and by the ravages of locusts, plagues, and earthquakes —
The Persian Chosroes overthrows the remains of the Greek colonies, which
are finally overrun by the Arabs — Peculiar manner in which the
boundary-line was fixed between Carthage and Cyrene — Eminent
philosophers who lived at Cyrene — Description of the country and its
former products — Recent history of the country. — _Page_ 1.
CHAPTER II.
PREPARATIONS FOR THE EXPEDITION.
Reasons which led to the expedition being undertaken — Peculiar
difficulties from the nature of the country — Equipment, with assistance
of the Foreign Office and other authorities in England to carry it out —
List of the outfit. — _Page_ 7.
CHAPTER III.
TRIPOLI.
Leave Malta in the gunboat _Boxer_, and arrive at Tripoli — The Meshia —
Position of the Castle and the Pacha’s harem — Visit to the artillery
and cavalry barracks — Unsuccessful attempt to overthrow the Turkish
government by Ghomer during the late Russian war — Notice of Tripoli, by
John Ogilby. — _Page_ 10.
CHAPTER IV.
BENGHAZI.
Leave Tripoli, and arrive at Benghazi — Adopt it as our base of
operations — The wretched state of the town, and the plague of flies —
The Castle and the principal buildings — Make friends with the Arab
shiekhs, and engage an Arab of Cyrene as an attendant — Buy two horses
and other necessaries for the journey — Manner in which auctions are
conducted — Camels procured, with the assistance of the Kaimacam — Visit
the ancient Necropolis and the river Lethe — The unsafe state of the
harbour — The loss of a brig off the entrance of it — The distance where
fresh water is procured. — _Page_ 13.
CHAPTER V.
JOURNEY BETWEEN BENGHAZI AND CYRENE.
Leave Benghazi — Rainy and stormy weather — Arrive at Gŭsr Merdj, and
hospitality of the Mudir — Description of the Plain and Castle — Resume
our journey through a beautiful country, abounding in game — Encamp at
Gŭsr Biligadem — Arrive at Cyrene, and select a tomb near the Fountain
of Apollo for our residence — Our workmen try to desert at Merdj. —
_Page_ 18.
CHAPTER VI.
CYRENE.
The native name of Cyrene — The position of the ruins, with the
configuration of the country — The Fountain of Apollo — General
description of the Necropolis — A detailed account of the different
kinds of tombs — The present aspect of the city — The ancient roads to
Apollonia and along the Wady Bil Ghadir — Picturesque grandeur of the
Wady Mûchgûn. — _Page_ 25.
CHAPTER VII.
COMMENCEMENT OF THE EXCAVATIONS.
Visit from Mohammed El Adouly — Commence the excavations at two tombs in
the Wady Bil Ghadir — These not proving successful, remove the men to a
temple near the southern gate of the city — Discover the statue of
Bacchus — The novel mode of removing it — Subsequent excavations in a
building adjoining a theatre, and afterwards in the Temple of Apollo —
Discover the colossal statue of Apollo; supposed statue of Hadrian; head
of Minerva; the portrait-head of Cnæus Cornelius Lentulus Marcellinus,
with its pedestal and inscription; a bronze portrait-head; Jupiter
Ammon; a group representing the nymph Cyrene strangling a lion; Diana
Venatrix — Description of the temple. — _Page_ 38.
CHAPTER VIII.
EMBARKATION OF THE STATUES ON BOARD THE _ASSURANCE_.
Examination of the country between Cyrene and the coast — Arrival of
H.M.S. _Assurance_ — Obliged to anchor off Ras El Hilal, on account of
the weather — The next day steams to Marsa Sousah, and disembarks the
waggons and stores — Several camels collected to take the stores up to
Cyrene — Trouble with the Arabs before they start — The waggons are
obliged to be taken to pieces, and carried up the Augubah on men’s
shoulders — Difficulties of taking the waggons across the country and
the descent of the Augubah — They are successively taken to the beach,
embarked on board the _Assurance_, and the vessel leaves for Malta. —
_Page_ 44.
CHAPTER IX.
DEALINGS WITH THE ARABS.
The position of the Zauyah — Threatening messages sent from the Achwani
and their shiekh, “Sidi Mustapha” — The Arabs attempt to prevent our
passing, and a number of our stores stolen by them — Appeal to the Mudir
of Ghegheb for assistance, and the way it was given — The two culprits
are apprehended with great formality, and quietly allowed to escape a
few days afterwards — The Mudir is dismissed for his conduct — Osman
Aga, the Bash-Cavass, is sent to our assistance — Our reputation as
doctors, and the curious application of the fair sex for keteebus — The
wandering habits and mode of life of the Bedouins — Forms of salutation
— Habit of swearing — Universal use of firearms. — _Page_ 48.
CHAPTER X.
VISIT TO THE OTHER TOWNS OF THE PENTAPOLIS.
The ruins of Apollonia and its harbour — Visit Imghurnis, and on our
second visit badly received by the Arabs — Excursion to Derna — Pass the
ruins of Gabiout Younes, Tirt, Lamloudeh, and Beit Thamr on our way —
Reside with M. de Fremeaux, the Vice-Consul — Visited on our arrival by
the Mudir and Kologhassi — The beauty of the little town of Derna — Its
luxurious gardens and abundance of water — The anchorage of Sousah
Hamema — Longer journey to Teuchira and Ptolemais — Pass by Gŭsr
Biligadem, Libiar Il Gharib, and Merdj — The present state of Teuchira —
Arrival at Ptolemais — The great gateway in the western wall still
standing, and a number of enormous reservoirs in the centre of the city
— Large tomb to the westward of it — Miss the road on our return to
Merdj — Hospitably received there again by the Mudir — Return to Cyrene
— Serious disturbance between the Arabs of the Haasa tribe and the Mudir
of Ghegheb — The castle attacked during the night, the shiekhs
liberated, and a number of men killed — They appeal to us for assistance
— The waterworks at Safsaf. — _Page_ 57.
CHAPTER XI.
CONTINUATION OF THE EXCAVATIONS.
The large temple near the Stadium — A few inscriptions found in it, but
all the sculpture wantonly destroyed — Visit of H.M.S. _Scourge_,
bringing Mr. W. Denison, a carpenter sent by the British Museum —
Celebration of the festival of the Melood — Proceed to Derna in the
_Scourge_, and return by land — Smith visits Benghazi to obtain workmen
and money — One of the negroes stolen by the Arabs — The smaller temple
near the Stadium — Statue of Minerva — The immediate neighbourhood of
the Temple of Apollo — Several inscriptions, statues, and heads of
different sizes discovered here — A seated Egyptian figure, colossal
female statue, nude statue of Bacchus, &c. — A palace, in which were
found the torso of a Roman emperor in armour, a large female draped
statue, busts of Antoninus Pius, Marcus Aurelius, a female bust, three
heads, and three inscriptions — Make a road down the Augubah, and
improve the road between Cyrene and the coast — The Temple of Venus —
Large quantity of sculpture found in it: Venus Euploia, and another
Venus with Cupid by her side seated on a dolphin, Pan, Aristæus, three
female busts with curious head-dresses, heads of Minerva and Perseus,
and a slab of marble in relief of Cyrene strangling a lion. — _Page_ 71.
CHAPTER XII.
FINAL EMBARKATION.
Arrival of H.M.S. _Melpomene_ — A large party of men are landed from the
ship, and start for Cyrene with three waggons — Serious disturbance with
the Arabs — The means taken to preserve peace — All the sculptures are
successively embarked — We finally leave Cyrene, and arrive at Malta. —
_Page_ 78.
CONCLUSION.
* * * * *
APPENDICES.
No. I. (contributed by Dr. C. SCHROFF). — The Thapsia Garganica —
Difference between the properties of this plant and the Silphium of the
Ancients. — _Page_ 87.
No. II. — Description of the Sculptures found at Cyrene. — _Page_ 91.
No. III. — List of Sculptures found on various sites at Cyrene. — _Page_
99.
No. IV. — Inscriptions discovered or found at Cyrene. — _Page_ 109.
ILLUSTRATIONS.
* * * * *
FRONTISPIECE.—EASTERN END OF THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS OF CYRENE.
PLATE.
1. GENERAL MAP OF THE CYRENAICA _To face page_ 6
2. TRIPOLI _Ditto_ 10
3. BENGHAZI _Ditto_ 14
4. AMOR BON ABDI SEYAT AND SHEIKH BOCHLEGA 14
5. SUPPOSED ENTRANCE TO THE RIVER LETHE 16
6. CASTLE AND VILLAGE OF MERDJ (BARCA) 20
7. MUDIR’S ROOM IN THE CASTLE OF MERDJ 21
8. ENCAMPMENT NEAR A ROMAN FORTRESS (GUSR _To face page_ 22
BILIGADEM)
9. INTERIOR OF OUR TOMB OF RESIDENCE 23
10. OUR WORKMEN—SALEH, MOHAMMED, AND ABDULLAH 24
11. WESTERN HILL OF CYRENE, WITH ENTRANCE TO THE _To face page_ 25
FOUNTAIN OF APOLLO
12. FOUNTAIN OF APOLLO _Ditto_ 26
13. GENERAL VIEW OF ONE OF THE HILLS IN THE _Ditto_ 27
NORTHERN NECROPOLIS OF CYRENE
14. LARGE TOMB AT THE EASTERN END OF THE 27
NORTHERN NECROPOLIS
15. TOMB IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS 23
16. RANGE OF TOMBS IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS _To face page_ 28
17. INTERIOR OF A TOMB IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS _Ditto_ 29
18. TOMBS TO THE WESTWARD OF WADY BIL GHADIR 29
19. A TOMB EMBELLISHED WITH FIGURES IN THE 30
NORTHERN NECROPOLIS OF CYRENE
20. TOMB FOR 105 SARCOPHAGI IN THE NORTHERN _To face page_ 30
NECROPOLIS
21. INTERIOR OF A PAINTED TOMB IN THE NORTHERN _Ditto_ 31
NECROPOLIS
22. INTERIOR OF A TOMB IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS 31
23. INTERIOR OF A TOMB CUT IN THE SIDE OF A 32
QUARRY IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS
24. INTERIOR OF A LARGE TOMB IN THE NORTHERN _To face page_ 32
NECROPOLIS
25. TOMBS IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS _Ditto_ 33
26. TOMBS (CALLED BY THE ARABS “KINISSIEH”) IN 33
THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS
27. LARGE TOMB ON THE FACE OF THE WESTERN HILL 34
OF CYRENE
28. BUILT TOMB ON THE SOUTH-WEST SIDE OF CYRENE _To face page_ 34
29. RUINS OF THE CHRISTIAN CITY OF CYRENE _Ditto_ 35
30. WADY MUCHGUN, TWO MILES TO THE WESTWARD OF _Ditto_ 36
CYRENE
31. PLAN OF AN ORNAMENTED AND PAINTED TOMB IN _Ditto_ 36
THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS OF CYRENE
32. PLAN OF A TOMB FOR 105 SARCOPHAGI IN THE _Ditto_ 36
NORTHERN NECROPOLIS
33. PLAN OF A TOMB IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS _Ditto_ 36
34. PLAN OF A TOMB IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS _Ditto_ 36
35. PLAN OF A LARGE TOMB IN THE NORTHERN _Ditto_ 36
NECROPOLIS
36. PLAN OF A BUILT TOMB ON THE SOUTH-WEST SIDE _Ditto_ 36
OF CYRENE
37. ELEVATION OF THE INTERNAL FAÇADE OF A TOMB _Ditto_ 36
IN THE WESTERN NECROPOLIS
38. TOMBS ON THE WESTERN SIDE OF WADY BIL GHADIR 37
39. MOHAMMED EL ADOULY 38
40. PLAN OF THE CITY OF CYRENE _To face page_ 38
41. PLAN OF THE CITY OF CYRENE, TO SHOW THE _To face page_ 40
POSITIONS FROM WHICH THE PLANS AND SKETCHES
WERE MADE
42. INTERIOR OF MOHAMMED EL ADOULY’S TENT 54
43. ARAB ARMS OF THE CYRENAICA 55
44. WADY LEBAIATH, BETWEEN CYRENE AND APOLLONIA _To face page_ 57
45. EASTERN CITY WALL AND RUINS OF APOLLONIA 57
46. RUINS OF IMGHERNIS _To face page_ 58
47. DERNA _Ditto_ 60
48. CASTLE OF DERNA 61
49. ARAB CAMP NEAR TEUCHIRA 64
50. RUINS OF PTOLEMAIS _To face page_ 64
51. GATEWAY IN THE WESTERN WALL OF PTOLEMAIS 66
52. TOMBS TO THE WESTWARD OF PTOLEMAIS _To face page_ 66
53. PLAN OF A CONSPICUOUS BUILT TOMB TO THE _Ditto_ 66
WESTWARD OF PTOLEMAIS
54. INSCRIPTIONS OVER THE ENTRANCES TO THE TOMBS 67
AT PTOLEMAIS
55. PLAN OF THE LARGE TEMPLE NEAR THE STADIUM AT _To face page_ 71
CYRENE
56. PLAN OF THE SMALLER TEMPLE NEAR THE STADIUM _Ditto_ 74
AT CYRENE
57. PLAN OF THE TEMPLE OF VENUS SITUATED TO THE _Ditto_ 76
SOUTH-WEST OF THE TEMPLE OF BACCHUS
58. ENCAMPMENT OF THE PARTY FROM H.M.S. 81
MELPOMENE, NEAR THE HEAD OF THE AUGUBAH
59. CENTRAL WADY AND SLOPE OF THE EASTERN HILL _To face page_ 82
OF CYRENE
60. THAPSIA GARGANICA 87
* * * * *
PHOTOGRAPHS.
PLATE.
61. BACCHUS.
62. APOLLO CITHARŒDUS.
63. THE EMPEROR HADRIAN.
64. MINERVA AND A MALE HEAD.
65. CNÆUS CORNELIUS LENTULUS MARCELLINUS
(PROPRÆTOR OF CYRENE).
66. BRONZE ICONIC HEAD.
67. APHRODITE AND FEMALE TORSO.
68. ICONIC FEMALE STATUE.
69. BUST OF THE EMPEROR ANTONINUS PIUS.
70. BUST OF THE EMPEROR MARCUS AURELIUS.
71. APHRODITE EUPLOIA.
72. APHRODITE AND EROS.
73. ICONIC FEMALE FIGURE.
74. FEMALE BUST OF ROMAN PERIOD.
75. HEAD OF PERSEUS.
76. THE NYMPH CYRENE OVERCOMING A LION, AND
BEING CROWNED BY LIBYA.
* * * * *
INSCRIPTIONS.
PLATE.
77. Containing numbers 1 to 5
78. Ditto ditto 6
79. Ditto ditto 6 „ 7
80. Ditto ditto 8 „ 11
81. Ditto ditto 12 „ 14
82. Ditto ditto 15 „ 17
83. Ditto ditto 18 „ 23
84. Ditto ditto 24 „ 26
85. Ditto ditto 27 „ 28
86. Ditto ditto 29 „ 32
ERRATA
* * * * *
In General Map of the Cyrenaica, facing page 6, place a line under
Apollonia for the ancient name.
Page 10, line 8 _for_ Caimakam, _read_ Kaimakam.
Page 25, line 3 _for_ Grenuah, _read_ Grennah.
Page 37, line 5 _for_ Mûchqûn, _read_ Mûchgûn.
Page 54, line 8 _for_ El Douly’s, _read_ El Adouly’s
(_under the woodcut_).
Page 71, line 39 _for_ Plate 6, _read_ Plates 78, 79, No. 6.
Page 71, line 40 _for_ Plate 8, _read_ Plate 79, No 7.
DISCOVERIES AT CYRENE.
* * * * *
CHAPTER I.
BEFORE beginning the narrative of our expedition to the Cyrenaica, we
shall recall, for the convenience of the reader, a few of the leading
facts connected with the history of that country.
Accounts, more or less detailed, of the origin and progress of the Greek
colony, of which Cyrene was the capital, are given by Herodotus, Strabo,
Sallust, &c. In modern times these fragmentary and often contradictory
accounts have been carefully collated and examined by the learned Dane,
Thrige, in his work entitled “Historia Cyrenes, Havniæ, 1819.” The
subsequent great work of Mr. Grote, and the several articles relating to
Cyrene in Dr. William Smith’s Classical Dictionaries, contain everything
of importance that the learned criticism of those distinguished scholars
has been able to authenticate regarding the history of the Pentapolis.
We have, therefore, with Dr. Smith’s kind permission, compiled the
following compendium from the articles _Cyrene_, _Cyrenaica_, _Thera_,
_Battus_, &c., in the Dictionaries of Classical Geography and Biography.
The Cyrenaica or Pentapolis was the name of an extensive tract of
country in the North of Africa, bounded on the east and west by the
respective territories of Egypt and Carthage, and on the north and south
by the Mediterranean and the Desert. The name _Cyrenaica_ was derived
from the capital city, Cyrene, and properly denoted the country as a
whole; while _Pentapolis_ was a collective name given to the five great
cities of Cyrene, Barca, Teuchira, Hesperides, and Apollonia, with their
several territories and dependencies. The Romans, therefore, who looked
upon the country as a single province of the empire, called it
Cyrenaica; whereas, in the time of the Ptolemies, when the country was
practically a confederacy of separate colonies, it was generally known
by the federal name of Pentapolis.
Cyrene, the capital of this country, and the most important Hellenic
colony in Africa, was founded in B.C. 631, by a body of Dorian colonists
from Thera (Santorin), an island in the Ægean Sea belonging to Sparta.
Battus, the leader of this band of colonists, was the son of
Polymnestus, a Theræan noble, his mother, according to some accounts,
being a Cretan princess. Considerable doubt exists regarding the origin
of his name: Herodotus believes that it was the Libyan word for “king,”
while others suppose it to have been derived from βατταρίζω, and to have
been expressive of an alleged impediment in his speech. No less doubt is
there as to the cause which led to the colonization of Cyrene. According
to the account of the Cyrenæans, as given by Herodotus, Battus, having
gone to consult the Delphic oracle about the removal of the physical
defect above mentioned, was enjoined to lead a colony into Libya; while
the story of the Theræans, as recorded in the same author, was, that
this injunction was laid on their king, Grinus, and that he pointed to
Battus as a younger and fitter man for the purpose. According, again, to
a fragment from the historian Menecles, preserved by Tzetzes, and the
scholiast to Pindar,[1] Battus was driven forth from Thera by civil war,
and was ordered by Apollo not to return to his country, but to betake
himself to the continent. Justin gives a strange mixture of the two
stories in Herodotus with the fable of Apollo’s love for the nymph
Cyrene. Amidst these conflicting statements, the one certain is, that
Battus led forth his colonists in obedience to the Delphic oracle, and
under a belief in the protection of Apollo.
Sailing to the then almost unknown shores of Libya, Battus and his
followers took possession of the island of Platea, in the Gulf of Bomba,
which they seem to have mistaken for the mainland. Hence, after two
years of suffering, and after again consulting the oracle, they removed
to the opposite shore, and resided in the well-wooded district of Aziris
for six years, at the end of which time some of the native Libyans
persuaded them to leave it for a better locality, and conducted them
through the region of Irasa to the actual site of Cyrene. Though Irasa
was deemed so delectable a region that the Libyan guides were said to
have led the Greeks through it in the night lest they should settle
there, the spot at which their journey ended was scarcely inferior for
beauty and fertility to any on the surface of the globe.
The site of Cyrene was in the territory of the Libyan tribe named
Asbystæ, and with them the Greek settlers seem from the first to have
been on terms of friendship very similar to those which subsisted
between the Carthaginians and their Libyan neighbours. The Greeks had
the immense advantage of commanding the abundant springs and fertile
meadows, to which the Libyans were compelled to resort when the supplies
of the less-favoured regions further inland began to fail. A close
connection soon grew up between the natives and the Greek settlers; and
not only did the former imitate the customs of the latter, but the two
races coalesced to a much greater extent than was usual in such cases.
It is very important to bear in mind that the population of Cyrene had a
very large admixture of Libyan blood by the marriages of the early
settlers with Libyan wives. The native Libyans, however, were altogether
excluded from political power, which was in the hands exclusively of the
descendants from the original settlers, or rather of those of them who
had already been among the ruling class in the mother state of Thera.
The dynasty of the Battiadæ lasted during the greater part of two
centuries, from B.C. 630 to somewhere between 460 and 430; and comprised
eight kings, bearing the names of Battus and Arcesilaus alternately.
After the foundation of Cyrene, little is known of Battus I. He appears
to have been vigorous and successful in surmounting the difficulties
which beset the infant colony, in making most of the natural advantages
of the country, and in subjugating the native tribes. He governed with
mildness and moderation, and executed various public works, of which the
most celebrated was the road which he made for the sacred procession to
the temple of Apollo. His subjects worshipped him as a hero, and
dedicated a statue of him at Delphi, representing him in a chariot,
driven by the nymph Cyrene, with Libya in the act of crowning him.
Nothing of importance is recorded in the reign of his son, Arcesilaus
I., about B.C. 590-574; but that of his successor, Battus II., marks the
most important period of the monarchy. In this reign, Cyrene received a
great accession of strength by the influx of a large number of colonists
from various parts of Greece, principally, perhaps, from Peloponnesus,
and from Crete and the other islands, whom the State invited over under
the promise of a new division of lands (probably to enable herself to
make head against the neighbouring Libyans), and who were further urged
to the migration by the Delphic oracle. This influx apparently giving
rise to further encroachments on the Libyan tribes, the latter, under
Adicran, their king, surrendered themselves to Apries, king of Egypt,
and claimed his protection. A battle ensued in the region of Irasa, B.C.
570, in which the Egyptians were defeated—this being the first time,
according to Herodotus, that they had ever come into hostile collision
with Greeks. This battle seems to have finished the war with Egypt; for
we read that Amasis, the successor of Apries, married Ladice, a Cyrenæan
woman of the house of Battus. By the same victory, too, the sovereignty
of Cyrene over the Libyans was confirmed. It was also most probably in
this reign that Cyrene began to occupy the neighbouring region with her
colonies.
The misfortunes of the monarchy began in the reign of Arcesilaus II.,
surnamed the “Oppressive,” about B.C. 554-544. By attempting to subvert
the constitution and establish a despotism, he caused a revolt of the
Libyan Periœci. His brothers, Perseus, Zacynthus, Aristomedon, and
Lycus, who instigated this rebellion, withdrew from Cyrene, and founded
the city of Barca. In his attempt to quell the insurrection, Arcesilaus
was signally defeated in a battle fought at Leucon or Leucoë, in
Marmarica, in which 7,000 of his soldiers were slain. He was afterwards
treacherously killed by his own brother Learchus. The intestine troubles
of Cyrene during the latter part of his reign, gave the inhabitants of
the new city of Barca an opportunity of extending their power over the
whole of the west part of the Cyrenaica, including the district on the
coast (as far as Hesperides), where we find the important post of
Teuchira belonging to them. According to Servius, they carried their
arms on land far west over the region of the Syrtes, towards Carthage,
and acquired such a maritime power as to defeat the Phœnicians in a
naval battle.
Battus III., or the “Lame,” son of Arcesilaus II., reigned from about
B.C. 544 to 529. During his reign, the Cyrenæans, under the advice of
the Delphic oracle, called in the aid of Demonax, a Mantineian, who drew
up for them a new constitution, by which the encroachments of the royal
house on the people were more than recovered, and the king was reduced
to political insignificance, retaining, however, the landed domain as
his private property, and also his sacerdotal functions. The political
power, in which it would seem none but the descendants of the original
colonists had any share, was now extended to the whole Greek population,
who were divided by Demonax into three tribes: (1) the Theræans, who
still retained the native Periœci; (2) Greeks from Peloponnesus and
Crete; (3) Greeks from the other islands of the Ægean. A senate was also
constituted, of which the king appears to have been president. In other
respects, the constitution seems to have resembled that of Sparta, which
was, through Thera, the original metropolis of Cyrene.
Pheretime, the widow of Battus III., and mother of his successor,
Arcesilaus III., joined with her son in an attempt to overturn the new
constitution of Demonax. Their first efforts were unsuccessful, and they
were driven from Cyrene; but Arcesilaus, who had taken refuge in Samos,
returned with a fresh band of colonists, chiefly from Ionia, took
Cyrene, and executed cruel vengeance on his opponents. He endeavoured to
strengthen his position by making submission to Cambyses, king of
Persia. From a superstitious fear of the woe denounced against him by an
oracle for his cruelty in the hour of success, or, perhaps, driven out
of the city by his subjects, he fled to his father-in-law, Alazir, king
of Barca. There, certain exiles from Cyrene, uniting with the Barcæans,
attacked both kings in the market-place, and killed them. His mother,
Pheretime, thereupon applied for aid to Aryandes, who had been appointed
Satrap of Egypt by Cambyses. Aryandes, who welcomed this opportunity of
effecting the conquest of Libya, collected a powerful army and fleet;
but, before commencing hostilities, he sent a herald to Barca, demanding
to know who had slain Arcesilaus. The Barcæans, having collectively
taken the act upon themselves, the desired pretext was gained, and
Aryandes despatched the expedition. After a siege of nine months, the
city was at last taken by treachery, and given over to the brutal
revenge of Pheretime. Those of the citizens who were supposed to have
had most share in her son’s death she impaled all round the circuit of
the walls, on which she fixed as bosses the breasts of their wives.
Those who were clearly guiltless of the murder were allowed to remain in
the city, but the rest of the inhabitants were sent to Persia, where
Darius settled them in a village of Bactria, still called Barca in the
time of Herodotus. After the siege of Barca, Pheretime retired with the
Persian army to Egypt, where, according to Herodotus, she died of a
loathsome disease, for having “provoked the jealousy of the gods by the
excessive indulgence of revenge.” Regarding her history, the following
remark is made by Grote:—“It will be recollected that in the veins of
this savage woman the Libyan blood was mixed with the Grecian. Political
enmity in Greece proper kills, but seldom, if ever, mutilates or sheds
the blood of women.”
The Persians ravaged great part of the country, and extended their
conquests as far as Hesperides; and though they were even inclined to
attack Cyrene on their way back to Egypt, they left the city unmolested.
The result of the victory of Arcesilaus and Pheretime was the overthrow
of the equitable constitution established by Demonax.
Of Battus IV., the successor of Arcesilaus III., nothing is known,
except that he was surnamed the “Handsome.”
Arcesilaus IV., the last of the kings of Cyrene, is the prince whose
victory in the Pythian Games, B.C. 466, is celebrated by Pindar. From
his odes, it also appears that Arcesilaus IV. endeavoured to make
himself despotic, by getting rid of the nobles of the state. It is
probable that the city Hesperides was founded by him, with the view of
securing a retreat for himself in the event of a successful rebellion of
his subjects. It is not known whether he died by violence or not; but
after his death royalty was abolished, and his son, Battus, who had fled
to Hesperides, was there murdered, and his head was thrown into the
sea,—a significant symbol of the utter extinction of the dynasty. This
was probably about B.C. 450.
Of the condition of the new republic we have very little information. As
to its basis, we are only told that the number of tribes and phratriæ
was increased; and as to its working, that the constant increase of the
democratic element led to violent party contests, in the course of
which, various tyrants obtained power in the state; among whom are named
Ariston and Nicocrates. When Alexander the Great invaded Egypt, the
Cyrenæans made an alliance with him, and after his death their whole
territory was made subject to Egypt by Ptolemy, the son of Lagus, B.C.
321. The country appears to have flourished under the Ptolemies, who
pursued their usual policy of raising new cities at the expense of the
ancient ones, or restoring the latter under new names. Thus Hesperides
became Berenice; Teuchira was called Arsinöe; Barca was entirely
eclipsed by its port, which was raised into a city under the name of
Ptolemais; and Cyrene herself began to decay in consequence of the
favours bestowed upon its port Apollonia. After these changes,
_Pentapolis_ became the common name of the country.
The last king of the Egyptian dynasty, Apion, an illegitimate son of
Ptolemy Physcon (on whose death, in B.C. 117, he had obtained the
government), left the country to the Romans by his testament in the year
B.C. 95. At first, the Romans granted the cities their freedom, and
bestowed upon them their former royal domain, only exacting a tribute;
but quarrels soon broke out between the different states, and after
Lucullus had made, by order of Sylla, a vain attempt to reconcile them,
the Romans applied their usual last remedy, and reduced the country to a
province, under the name of Cyrenaica (probably in B.C. 75), which was
united with Crete on the conquest of that island in B.C. 67. In the
division of the provinces under Augustus, the united province, under the
name of Creta-Cyrene, Creta et Cyrene, or Creta simply, was constituted
a senatorial province under the government of a proprætor, with the
title of proconsul, who had a legatus and one, if not two, quæstors.
Under Constantine, Crete and Cyrenaica were made separate provinces, the
latter being called Libya Superior, and placed under the government of a
Præses. It should be observed, that under the Romans the eastern
boundary of the province, which divided it from Marmarica, was formed by
an imaginary line drawn southwards from Axylis, a town somewhat to the
west of the Chersonesus Magna.
The decline of the country in prosperity may be dated chiefly from the
reign of Trajan, when the Jews, large numbers of whom had settled there
under the Ptolemies, rose in insurrection, massacred 220,000 Romans and
Cyrenæans, and were put down with great difficulty and much slaughter.
The loss of population during these bloody conflicts, and the increasing
weakness of the whole empire, left the province an easy prey to the
Libyan barbarians, whose attacks were aided by the ravages of locusts,
plagues, and earthquakes. The sufferings of the Pentapolis from these
causes, in the beginning of the fifth century, are pathetically
described by Synesius, the bishop of Ptolemais, in an extant oration and
in various passages of his letters; and at a later period by Procopius.
In A.D. 616, the Persian Chosroes overthrew the remains of the Greek
colonies so utterly, as to leave only the gleanings of the harvest of
destruction to the Arab conquerors, who finally overran the country A.D.
647.—(Gibbon, VIII. 227, and IX. 444.)
At the height of its prosperity, Cyrene possessed an extensive commerce
with Greece and Egypt, especially in the medical drug called Silphium:
with Carthage its relations were always on a footing of great distrust,
and its commerce on the west frontier was conducted entirely by
smuggling. At what period its dominion over the Libyan tribes was
extended so far as to meet that of Carthage at the bottom of the Greater
Syrtis is disputed, some authorities referring it to the republican age,
others to the period of the Ptolemies. Regarding the manner in which
this boundary was settled, the following romantic story is told by
Sallust:—
“The indefinite nature of the boundary between the territories of
Carthage and Cyrene was the cause of many wars between them. After
various alternate successes and defeats, they entered into the following
agreement,—that certain persons deputed by each state should leave their
home on an appointed day, and that the place where the parties might
meet should be considered as the boundary of the kingdoms.
“Two brothers, named Philæni, were appointed on the part of Carthage,
who contrived to travel faster than the deputies from Cyrene; but
whether this was occasioned by accident or the indolence of the
Cyrenæans, I have not been able to ascertain. Stormy weather might
undoubtedly occasion delays in such a country, as well as it is known to
do at sea; for when violent winds prevail in level and barren tracts,
the sand which is raised by them is driven so forcibly into the faces
and eyes of those who cross them, that their progress is considerably
impeded. So soon as the people of Cyrene were aware of the ground which
they had lost, and reflected on the punishment which would await them in
consequence on their return, they began to accuse the Carthaginians of
having set out before the appointed time; and when a dispute arose on
the subject, they determined to brave everything rather than return home
defeated. In this state of affairs, the Carthaginians desired the Greeks
to name some conditions of accommodation; and when the latter proposed
that the deputies from Carthage should either be buried on the spot
which they claimed as the boundary, or allow them to advance as far as
they chose on the same conditions, the Philæni immediately accepted the
terms, and, giving themselves up to the service of their country, were
buried alive on the spot where the dispute had occurred. On the same
spot, two altars (Aræ Philænorum) were consecrated to their memory by
the people of Carthage, and other honours were also decreed to them at
home.”
By a comparison of the accounts of Ptolemy, Strabo, Pliny, and Mela, the
Aræ Philænorum appear to have been situated near the bottom of the
Greater Syrtis. At the time of Hannibal’s expedition to Italy, B.C. 217,
they formed the eastern boundary of the Carthaginian territory.—(See
Beechey, p. 220.)
Cyrene held a distinguished place in the records of Hellenic science. As
early as the time of Herodotus, it was celebrated for its physicians: it
gave its name to a philosophic sect founded by one of its sons,
Aristippus; another, Carneades, was the founder of the Third or New
Academy at Athens; and it was also the birthplace of Eratosthenes, who
may be called the founder of astronomy, and who raised geography to the
rank of a science; of the poet Callimachus, who boasted a descent from
the royal house of Battus; and of the eloquent rhetorician Synesius, who
afterwards became Bishop of Ptolemais.
The portion of the Cyrenaica actually occupied by the Greek
colonists—viz., from the Boreum Promontorium on the west to the
Chersonesus Magna on the east—was, in respect of position, formation,
climate, and soil, one of the most delightful regions on the surface of
the globe. Its centre is occupied by a moderately elevated table-land,
whose edge runs parallel to the coast, to which it sinks down in a
succession of terraces, clothed with verdure, intersected by mountain
streams running through ravines filled with the richest vegetation, well
watered by the frequent rains in winter, and sheltered by the mass of
the mountain from the sands and hot winds of the Sahara. The various
terraces enjoyed a great diversity of climates, and produced a
corresponding variety of flowers, vegetables, and fruits; and the
successive harvests, at the different elevations, lasted for eight
months out of the twelve. The table-land extends some seventy or eighty
miles in breadth between the Sahara and the coast, but it is only on its
N. and N.W. slopes that it enjoys the physical advantages now described.
Among its products were corn, oil, wine; all kinds of fruit, especially
dates, figs, and almonds; cucumbers, truffles, cabbage, box, and
saffron; flowers, especially roses, from which exquisite perfumes were
extracted; and, above all, the plant for which the country was
especially celebrated,—viz., silphium or laserpitium,—which produced the
valuable article of commerce already referred to. The district was also
famous for its honey, its ostriches, and its horses, large studs of
which were kept at Cyrene and at Barca.
Of the more recent history of the Cyrenaica there is little to be
related. In consequence of the Arab occupation, the whole country
relapsed into a state of barbarism, from which it has never emerged, the
only important event in its history being its conquest by the Turks
under Solyman the Magnificent, who took its modern capital, Tripoli, in
1551. Since that date, as part of Tripoli, it has formed a nominal
portion of the Ottoman empire, owning a greater or less degree of
subjection to the authority of the Sultan. Soon after its conquest by
Solyman, it gradually fell, like Egypt, Tunis, and Algiers, into the
power of an hereditary dynasty of Beys, who were all but independent of
the Turkish government. In 1808, when this dynasty was expelled by
Sultan Mahmoud, the state of Tripoli became a mere province or Pachalik,
which has ever since been regarded as an integral portion of the
Sultan’s dominions.
[Illustration: Pl. 1.
CYRENAICA. CORRECTED FROM THE SURVEYS OF CAPTS. SMYTH BEECHEY & SPRATT
R.N.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
CHAPTER II.
FROM the short sketch of the ancient history of Cyrene given in the last
chapter, the reader will be at no loss to discover the reasons which led
us to undertake an expedition, for the purpose of examining the ruins of
that distinguished city. The simple fact of its having been the capital
of a flourishing Greek colony, afforded presumptive evidence of the
existence of interesting and valuable remains; and the absence of any
stationary population on its site, after the date of the Arab conquest,
favoured the hope that such remains would be found in a comparatively
perfect condition.
In many places, such as Athens, Rome, Halicarnassus, Rhodes, &c., the
great obstacle to the recovery of the objects of ancient art, that lie
buried among the ruins, is the occupation of the sites by modern towns.
Where such occupation has been uninterrupted, the probability of the
existence of extensive remains is, moreover, greatly diminished;
inasmuch as the successive generations of inhabitants have not
unfrequently made use of the materials of the ancient city in the
construction of their own buildings, and wantonly destroyed the statues
and other sculptures, as relics of Pagan idolatry.
In the case of Cyrene, however, it was almost certain that the site of
the city had been unoccupied for upwards of 1,000 years; so that it was
highly probable that whatever sculptures and other remains had escaped
destruction at the hands of the early Christians and first Arab
conquerors, must soon have been hid from view by a luxuriant vegetation,
and, except in the most elevated situations, become gradually buried
beneath the surface of the soil. From such considerations it was to be
concluded, _à priori_, that many remains of the ancient Cyrene were
still in existence,—a conclusion confirmed by the testimony of all the
travellers who had visited the actual site.
Although there were thus sufficient grounds for regarding Cyrene as a
good field for excavation, there were circumstances peculiar to its
position and the present condition of the country, which made it very
doubtful whether such excavations could be carried on successfully. One
great obstacle lay in the fact of its inland position in a mountainous
country, from which it was to be feared that heavy and fragile objects,
such as marble statues, could not be conveyed to the coast for
embarkation, except at excessive cost of time, labour, and money.
Another no less important consideration was the character of the present
inhabitants of the country, the Bedouins, a fanatical race of wandering
Arabs, proverbial for their rapacity and violence. Moreover, Cyrene
could only be reached by a long land journey from Benghazi, or Derna,
the only places on the coast at which the caravan required for such a
journey could be procured; and also the only places in the country where
the authority of the Turkish Government was more than a name.
Before fitting out a regular expedition for the purpose of excavating,
it was therefore advisable to gain sufficient information to form a
proximate estimate of the cost and chances of success of such an
undertaking; and this could only be obtained by an actual visit to
Cyrene, and a careful examination of the country between the city and
the coast. It struck me, when stationed at Malta, after the close of the
expedition to Halicarnassus and Cnidus, in which I had been associated
with Mr. C. T. Newton, that a reconnoitring excursion might be made to
the Cyrenaica at little or no expense to the Government; the only
absolute necessaries for its accomplishment being the use of a small
vessel for, at most, two or three months, the sanction of the Foreign
Office, and leave of absence from military duty. At that time (the
spring of 1860) there was a small sailing schooner lying in Malta
harbour, called the _Kertch_, which, I thought, would answer the purpose
admirably. A few men from H.M.S. _Hibernia_, to which she was a tender,
would be a large enough crew; and being only a sailing vessel, she would
cost nothing in fuel. I talked over the project with Commander Porcher,
then Lieutenant of the _Hibernia_, who at once expressed his willingness
to join me in the undertaking.
Our proposal was to visit the Cyrenaica at our own expense, for the
purpose of examining the country with a view to a subsequent _working_
expedition, provided the Foreign Office sanctioned the proceeding, and
the Admiralty allowed the _Kertch_ to be placed for a short time at our
disposal. We thought it desirable to have some such vessel, not only to
take us to the coast of Barbary, but to remain there while we made our
journeys inland. She would thereby serve as a “base of operations,” and
would be of special use in the event, which was not unlikely, of our
being obliged, by the hostility of the Arabs, to beat a hasty retreat.
This proposal I submitted to Sir John Burgoyne, Inspector-General of
Engineers, and to Mr. Newton, by both of whom it was cordially approved
of. On their joint recommendation, Lord Russell kindly sanctioned the
project, applied to the Admiralty for the means of carrying it into
execution, and furnished us with letters of recommendation to her
Majesty’s agents in Barbary, and a Firman which he had obtained in our
favour from the Turkish Government. In reply to Lord Russell’s
application, the Admiralty stated, that as the _Kertch_ was urgently
required for other services, she could not be given in the way we had
suggested; but, if his Lordship wished it, that orders would be given to
provide us with a passage as soon as possible to the coast of the
Cyrenaica. This offer being accepted, orders were immediately sent to
Admiral Sir William Martin, Commander-in-Chief of the Mediterranean
fleet, to send us to Benghazi, or such other place as we preferred, as
soon as there was a vessel available for that purpose. We were at the
same time informed that H.R.H. the Duke of Cambridge, and the Duke of
Somerset, First Lord of the Admiralty, had been pleased to grant us
leave of absence for an indefinite period.
The want of a vessel like the _Kertch_, to remain with us during our
excursion, caused, of course, a considerable modification of our plans.
Instead of having our supplies and the means of retreat more or less at
our own disposal, we should be obliged, by the new arrangement, simply
to take our chance among the Arabs, and get on in the best way we could,
the expense at the same time being greatly increased. We were thankful,
however, for what we had got, and began at once to make the necessary
preparations for the expedition.
On account of the want of harbours on the coast of the Cyrenaica, our
original intention was to have started in July, and to have returned to
Malta before the winter. Considerable delay, however, took place before
a vessel could be had, and it was already winter when everything was
ready for our departure.
It is always difficult to know what to take on a long journey in an
uncivilized country. One is apt to forget a number of things that are
really useful and even indispensable, and perhaps still more so, to take
a great many that are afterwards only in the way. For the benefit of
future travellers, therefore, we give the following list of our outfit,
in which, fortunately, we found little that was either superfluous or
deficient.
_Materials, &c._—Two double circular tents complete with storm guys and
pegs; two small portable wooden trestle bedsteads, made to roll up and
be carried in waterproof bags; two field-hospital cork mattresses
(rolling up), two pillows, four blankets, and two rugs, all carried in
two waterproof bags; two iron folding chairs; cooking apparatus,
consisting of a large saucepan, a kettle, a gridiron, and tea and coffee
pots; a few knives, forks, and spoons, and some tin dishes, plates, and
cups; a lantern (talc), and a large supply of candles and lucifer
matches; a few simple medicines, some lint, sticking plaster, an axe,
two small hatchets, two saws, six spades and pickaxes, a crowbar, a coil
of 1½-inch rope, a ball of whipcord, a hammer, and some nails.
_Provisions._—Two bags of ship’s biscuit, a bag of rice, a large supply
of tea, coffee, sugar, and salt, packed in tin boxes; two dozen tins of
preserved meats to be used on emergencies only; two small cheeses; some
spices, such as mustard, pepper, and curry-powder; two dozen of brandy.
Besides the above,—guns and revolvers, and a good stock of ammunition;
English saddles, bridles, &c.; personal luggage, such as clothes, books,
instruments, &c., as little as possible.
CHAPTER III.
ALL our preparations being completed, we embarked, with our two Maltese
servants, on board H.M.’s Gunboat _Boxer_, 2nd Master Gulliver
commanding, and left Malta for Tripoli, Nov. 19, 1860. Our object in
going there was to have our Firman presented to the Pacha or Governor-
general of Barbary, who resides at Tripoli, and has subordinate
Kaimakams, or Lieutenant-governors at Mourzouk and Benghazi. After a
stormy passage, we reached Tripoli on the evening of the 21st, where we
were most kindly welcomed by Colonel Herman, H.M.’s Consul-general,
whose liberal hospitality we enjoyed during our stay. He had already
presented the Firman, and seen that the most favourable orders regarding
us had been forwarded to the Kaimakam of Benghazi. The evening before
our departure, he entertained the Pacha at dinner, on which occasion we
had the opportunity of becoming personally acquainted with His
Excellency, who knew a little French, took his wine freely, played a
fair game of billiards, and in every respect was quite unlike the ideal
Osmanli.
Eastern towns bear such a resemblance to each other that it is difficult
to give a distinctive description of one in particular. The houses,
streets, and bazaars of Tripoli might be part of Constantinople or
Smyrna. The inhabitants, however, are very different; instead of the
slow gait and placid expression of the Turks, they have an unpleasantly
wild and active appearance not at all reassuring to the traveller.
Besides the Arabs, who form the great bulk of the population, there are
a considerable number of Jews and Maltese.
The most prominent feature of Tripoli is the Meshiah or date-gardens,
which occupy some six or eight square miles along the shore to the
eastward of the town. Throughout their extent, they are so thickly
planted, that the ground is almost completely shaded by the dense
foliage of the date-palms. After traversing the Meshiah, one is much
struck with its abrupt termination. From a luxuriant garden, the
visitor, without warning, suddenly finds himself in the desert,—a bare
undulating expanse of sand, stretching away to a range of distant hills.
The most conspicuous building in the city is the Pacha’s harem, close to
the Eastern gate. By a strange freak of a former Pacha, part of it has
been painted a bright red, which gives it an odd appearance in the midst
of the surrounding mass of whitewashed walls. This building was the
residence of the Karamanli Beys before Barbary was taken possession of
by the Turks; and shortly before the fall of that dynasty, it was the
scene of the murder of his brother by Yusuf Bey, in the presence of
their mother—one of those domestic tragedies so common in the houses of
Eastern rulers.
The government of Barbary and Fezzan is now similar to that of other
Turkish provinces, being administered by a Pacha appointed by the Porte.
As is the case with most Turkish governors, his tenure of office is
usually very short, seldom, in fact, exceeding a year.
In the western part of the town, near the shore, stands the Castle, an
irregular old building very much in need of repair. It contains the
Medjlis or council chamber and the other public rooms of the Pacha, and
is garrisoned by two or three battalions of regular infantry. A few
years ago, the town was thrown into a state of consternation by the
mutiny of the troops composing the garrison, who besieged the Castle,
and threatened the town with destruction, if their arrears of pay were
not settled and some other demands complied with. The firmness of the
Pacha, and a few timely concessions, with difficulty restored
subordination.
[Illustration: Pl. 2.
TRIPOLI
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
Besides the Infantry in the Castle, there is a considerable force of
Artillery and Cavalry quartered in the Meshiah. When we told the General
that we should like to see their barracks, he sent one of his aides-de-
camp to show us over them. The two barracks (Artillery and Cavalry) are
very pleasantly situated near each other, about a mile and a half from
the town. We found them remarkably clean and well kept, and the stores
of arms, clothing, &c., in perfect order.
In addition to the regular troops, many of the native Arabs are retained
by the Government as irregular cavalry, called Koralié. They are similar
to the Bashi Bozouks of other parts of Turkey, and are employed
principally in the collection of the tribute.
During the late Russian war, an attempt was made to overthrow the
Turkish government, and restore the rule of the Karamanlis. The head of
the rebellion was a descendant of one of the last Beys, a chief named
Ghomer, who had been kept a prisoner for some years at Constantinople,
but had either escaped or been released. So many of the native tribes
were in his favour, that for some time he was powerful enough to set the
government at defiance. He seems, besides, to have been a man eminently
well fitted for carrying on irregular warfare. Several expeditions sent
against him ended in failure and disaster; but his army was at last
completely defeated by a force under the immediate command of the Pacha,
who on that occasion was accompanied by Colonel Herman, to whose
judicious counsel he was much indebted for its fortunate result. After
his defeat, Ghomer wandered as a fugitive, with a price set on his head,
until, at last, he fell into the hands of some of the Pacha’s followers,
by whom he was slain. One of his most active partisans was an
Englishman, who, on the suppression of the rebellion, was taken prisoner
and sent for trial to Constantinople; but on reaching the Dardanelles,
he was quietly released by order of the Sultan.
The following quaint sketch of the history of Tripoli is given in a work
published in 1670, entitled “Africa; being an Accurate Description of
the Regions of Egypt, Barbary, Libya, and Billedulgerid, the Land of
Negroes, Guinee, Æthiopia, and the Abyssines, &c. &c., by John Ogilby,
Esquire, Master of His Majesty’s Revels in the Kingdom of Ireland.”
“This city and State (Tripoli) hath from the beginning had Lords of
greatest eminency; as first the Romans, to whom it did Homage and
Fealty, when they were Masters of Africa; but as their strength and
glory declined, shrouded themselves under the protection of the Kings of
Morocco, Fez, and Tunis, which have possessed it by right of Birth: but
when the Inhabitants saw themselves oppressed by the Tyranny of Mukamur,
Son of Hesen, King of Tunis, they threw the yoke off their Necks, first
by a general Revolt, then expelling the King’s Lieutenant, and all other
his officers, and at last electing from among themselves one whom they
made their Ruler or Magistrate, putting all the Revenue and Support of
the State into his hands. In the beginning this new Lord ruled with all
gentleness; but afterwards degenerating into all sorts of Tyranny, his
brother in law revenged the cause of the City by killing him. Freed from
this Viper of their own breeding, they impowered a courtier of Prince
Abubacer, who had been a Recluse or Hermit who held the command a few
months, till Ferdinand, King of Arragon and Castile, sent Don Pedro de
Navarre thither with an Army, who surprized the city, made all the
Inhabitants Slaves, and brought them away; together with their Governour
and his Son, whom he sent first to Messina, from thence to Palermo,
where the Emperor Charles V. set him at liberty, dismissing him home to
Tripoli, which the Christians, as we said, had dismantled and made
untenable in all parts except the castle, which they furnished with a
brave wall, whereon they planted divers great Cannon.
“The young Prince being come to Tripoli, repeopled it, in the name and
on the behalf of the Emperor Charles; but in the year 1533, together
with Tunis, Byserta, Susa, Monaster, and the Island of Zerby, was
regained by Barberossa, who was scarcely warm in it before the Emperor
Charles reassaulted and took it, forthwith making a Present of it to the
Knights of Malta, who possessed it till the year 1551, when, under the
reign of Solyman the Magnificent, Sinan Bashaw came and besieged
Tripoli; to whom after a short time it was delivered upon honourable
articles; among which one was, That the garrison should march out with
Bag and Baggage, and be provided of convenient shipping to Malta by
Sinan; but, contrary to the conditions, most of them were plundered of
their Goods: two hundred of the Moors, who had served the Maltese, were
put to the Sword, and most of the Knights of Malta sent to the galleys,
and the rest the Bashaw took and made slaves.
“After this victory Sinan appointed Morat Aga to be Viceroy, and ever
since the Grand Seignior sends from Constantinople every three years a
Beglerbeg or Bashaw thither to support his Conquests.
“About the year 1598, Sidi Haga, a Marabout, or Priest, designing to
make himself a Master of the city and kingdom, with the assistance of
the meaner sort, began a notable Rebellion; upon the first intelligence
whereof, Assam Bassa, Admiral at Sea, sailed thither with sixty galleys
and some soldiers, from Tunis and Algier, on a sudden fell into the
Marabout’s Quarters, whose own men, finding their error, in some measure
to mitigate the fury against themselves, set an end to their mutiny by
presenting their Captain’s head to Sinan, who sent it to the Grand
Seignior.
“In this condition Tripoli continued until about the year 1600, when the
authority of the Bashaw was diminished by the soldiers and their
commanders, in the same manner as Kara Osman did at Tunis, since which
time Mahomet Bey, a Grecian Renegado, of the ancient house of the
Justinians, hath so laid his business, that having got the Banner of
Tripolis from the Grand Seignior, after he became Master of the Castle,
would not endure the Bashaw any longer, but began to rule with full
authority, yet still pretending a subjection to the Turk; and to
preserve his favour, as an acknowledgement and homage, he frequently
sends over many costly presents, and slaves: But at length this Bey
became so powerful, that nothing was done but by his peculiar command.
For he took soldiers at his pleasure, without the knowledge of the
Divan, or Militia, and placed them in the Castle, for the security of
his own person, that he might not be trepanned into his Ruin by the
Policies of the Great Turk: and in this posture of Government it
remained and doth still; only in 1667, the Moors made a dangerous
Insurrection; but it proved only to the loss of their own heads.”
CHAPTER IV.
AFTER spending four days very pleasantly at Tripoli, we reluctantly took
leave of Colonel and Mrs. Herman, and started for Benghazi, in the
_Boxer_, on the 25th. There being little coal to spare, we went under
sail, and as the winds were light and variable, we did not reach
Benghazi till noon of the 30th.
Shortly after we had anchored, the late Mr. Frederick Crowe, H.M.’s
Vice-Consul, came on board, and most kindly invited us to take up our
quarters at his house. Our original intention was to have gone on to
Derna, and made it the starting-point of our journey to Cyrene, as the
distance from that place was much less than from Benghazi. By Mr.
Crowe’s advice, however, we gave up this idea, and resolved to adopt
Benghazi as our “base of operations.” He told us that as there was not
at that time a single European at Derna to assist us, we should have
great difficulty in forming a caravan, and making the necessary
arrangements for our journey. We were therefore easily induced to accept
his kind offers of hospitality and assistance.
At the landing-place we were received by some officers sent by the
Kaimakam, who informed us that rooms had been prepared for our
accommodation at the Castle. Saddle-horses also were in waiting, out of
compliment rather than for use, the distance to the Castle being only
some fifty yards. After the exchange of the usual salutations and fine
speeches, the ceremonial reception came to an end, and the officers
retired. Immediately afterwards we were happy to find ourselves under
the hospitable roof of Mr. Crowe. The following day the _Boxer_ left to
return to Malta.
Benghazi, built on the site of the ancient Hesperides or Berenice,
occupies the point of a narrow strip of land between the sea and a
shallow salt lake or lagoon. A belt of palm-trees behind the town, and
the solitary minaret of a mosque, are the only objects that rise above
the monotonous level of the surrounding country, and give any
distinctive character to the scene. We must, however, except some half-
dozen bent and melancholy-looking palms on Juliana Point, on the
opposite side of the entrance to the harbour. For upwards of twenty
miles inland from Benghazi, the country is an unvaried undulating plain,
with hardly a single feature to mark one part of it from another. A few
juniper and baturne shrubs grow here and there. The sketch we have given
is taken from the northward of the town near the meat-market, and a few
yards in front of the only windmill in the country.
The streets and houses in the town are wretched in the extreme. The
houses, if such they may be called, are all built of small stones
plastered and held together with mud. The consequence is, that the town
is half laid in ruins every winter by the rain, and as but few of the
fallen houses are ever rebuilt, the miserable appearance of the streets
may easily be imagined. Whitewash, so liberally used by the Turks, and
which gives such an air of comfort and cleanliness to many of their
villages, is here unknown. The streets, encumbered with the ruins of
fallen houses, are, moreover, filthy to a degree unknown in the worst of
European cities.
No account of Benghazi would be complete without mentioning the plague
of flies, to which it is at nearly all seasons subject. During meals, a
partial escape from their persecution may be effected by darkening the
room, and thereby inducing them to settle on the ceiling. Even then,
however, they are perpetually crawling into the cups and plates,
notwithstanding the efforts of a servant “told off” for the very purpose
of driving them away. It is almost unnecessary to add that fleas abound,
as in other Eastern places.
[Illustration: Pl. 3.
BENGHAZI
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
The following graphic and accurate description of the Benghazi flies is
given by Beechey:—“On account of the filth and rubbish and the stagnant
pools in the town, Benghazi is proverbial for flies, and every part of
the town, both within and without the houses, may truly be said to swarm
with them. Among the various annoyances with which the place abounds
these are perhaps the most serious of any, or, at all events, they are
those from which it is least possible to escape; there is, in fact, no
chance of avoiding them. They follow you everywhere from place to place,
settle on every part of the arms, legs, and body, which the heat of the
weather obliges you to leave uncovered; creep obstinately into the
corners of the eyes and up the nostrils, into the hollows of the ears
and the corners of the mouth when it is closed; and often fly down the
throat, nearly choking you, when it is open. At meals, every part of the
dishes and their contents are covered as soon as they are produced, and
every fluid becomes a trap for as many of these insects as can crowd
over its surface. In short, there is literally no riding or walking, no
reading or writing, no eating or resting one’s self in any part of
Benghazi in comfort for them; and if at night they take up their
accustomed position on the ceiling, and give place to the fleas and
mosquitoes, the first dawn of morning finds them on the wing, and all
alive to recommence their operations.”
The Castle, which stands on one side of the entrance to the harbour,
consists of a number of houses enclosed by a quadrangular wall with
round flanking towers at the corners. The masonry is very little
superior to that of the rest of the town; in fact, the walls are so
badly built that they would soon collapse under the concussion of the
fire of their own guns. One range of houses is used as a barrack for the
wing of an infantry regiment, another as the prison, and the remaining
buildings as the residence and council-chamber of the Kaimakam.
The English Consulate, and a few two-storied houses lately built close
by it, give a respectable appearance to the part of the town near the
Castle. When we were at Benghazi, some missionaries from the Propaganda
at Rome were building in this quarter a good substantial house and
chapel, which promised to become by far the finest structure in the
town. The object of this mission is not so much to attempt the
conversion of the native Arabs, as to attend to the spiritual wants of
the Christians of the place, who are almost all Maltese. The mission
consists of one priest and two or three lay brethren, all of the
Capuchin order of friars.
[Illustration: PLATE 4.—AMOR BON ABDI SEYAT AND SHEIKH BOCHLEGA.
_From a Photograph._]
One of the first things we had to attend to at Benghazi was the question
of escort. By order of the Pacha, the Kaimakam was required to furnish
us with an adequate one; but Mr. Crowe advised us to go as independently
of the Turkish authorities as possible; as he thought rightly, that all
the soldiers the Kaimakam could send with us could afford little
assistance if the Arabs actually turned against us, and would, probably,
by their very presence, only provoke hostility. We therefore declined
the Kaimakam’s offers of protection in this respect, and contented
ourselves with a circular letter addressed to his subordinates, the
Mudirs of Merdj, Ghegheb, and Derna. Meantime, Mr. Crowe sent for some
of the principal sheikhs of the tribes on our proposed route, in order,
if possible, to enlist them in our favour. Some of them fortunately
happened to come to Benghazi a few days afterwards, when Mr. Crowe asked
them to pay him a visit at the Consulate. When they came, he told them
of our intended journey to Cyrene, and said that we should prefer their
protection to that of the military escort offered by the Kaimakam. They
replied that they were very happy to be able to do anything in return
for the benefits he had conferred on them, and especially for the
restraint which his presence exercised upon the unlawful and oppressive
conduct of the Pachas. They then gave us letters to the sheikhs of the
principal tribes on our route, and ordered an Arab from the
neighbourhood of Cyrene to accompany us on our journey, and remain with
us afterwards. This man, Amor Bon Abdi Seyat, proved in the end of the
greatest service. He is shown on the left of the annexed sketch, and the
other was one of our friends at Cyrene, Sheikh Bochlega.
The question of escort settled, the next thing to be attended to was our
equipment for the journey. In this, as in all our arrangements, we were
greatly assisted by Mr. Crowe. We were also much indebted to Mr.
Cesareo, a merchant of Benghazi, who afterwards accompanied us to
Cyrene, at Mr. Crowe’s request. The Kaimakam undertook to procure as
many camels for hire as we required. Our horses we bought at an auction,
which is worthy of some notice, as it was conducted on rather a curious
principle. The auctioneer walks about the bazaar, showing whatever is
for sale, and calling out the last bid for it. When no one will bid
more, the article is “knocked down” to the highest bidder, not at the
sum offered by himself, but at the next highest. In bidding, therefore,
against other people, the best plan is to allow them to run the price up
till it has nearly reached the sum one is willing to pay, and then to
offer a much larger price. This, of course, deters them from offering
more; and the article is obtained at the smaller sum which they had bid
for it. Our two horses bought in this way cost £14.
A great many necessaries for the journey had to be got, which, had we
been left entirely to ourselves, we might have forgotten. Among the most
important of these were skins for carrying water, called “girbehs,” and
a leather bucket for drawing it. The _girbeh_ is a whole goat-skin
tanned inside, with the hair left on outside. To our stock of provisions
we added another bag of biscuit and a large bag of onions. We also
bought a dozen Barbary mats, which added greatly to our comfort, both on
the journey, and afterwards during our stay at Cyrene. They make an
excellent covering for the floor of a tent, for which purpose they are
much to be preferred to rugs or carpets. Being made of thin strips of
reed, they are not injured by the rain, and can be dried at once by
simply rubbing them with a cloth. Their special excellence, however, is
that they afford very little harbour for fleas.
We laid in a good stock of coarse-grained powder to be used as
“bakshish,” or presents. As the importation and sale of gunpowder are
prohibited, it is smuggled on shore by the traders of Benghazi, who
charge the Arabs a price proportionate to the risk they run in procuring
it, or the sum they expend in bribing the officers of the Custom-house.
For this reason, powder is often more useful to the traveller than money
itself. By Mr. Crowe’s advice, we also took for “bakshish” some printed
cotton handkerchiefs, and some leaf tobacco for chewing. Somewhat to our
surprise, we found smoking almost unknown, and the habit of chewing
tobacco very prevalent among the Arabs. They use with it a kind of
saltpetre, called “natron,” obtained, as we were told, from the salt
lakes of Fezzan.
Of the ancient city very few remains are now visible. At the back of the
Castle, where the ground rises a little, the sea has washed away the
soil, and thereby formed a steep face or escarp, in which some
foundations may be seen cropping out; but, unfortunately, the tomb of a
Marābut or saint, and the surrounding public burial-ground, prevent any
excavation being made.
During the twelve days that we remained at Benghazi, we made several
excursions with Mr. Crowe in the neighbourhood. The most interesting
locality is at the head of the shallow lagoon about two miles from the
town. Here a succession of mounds and other irregularities in the
surface of the ground mark the position of the ancient cemetery. About
eleven years ago, some rather extensive excavations were made here by M.
de Bourville, French Vice-Consul at Benghazi. His labours were rewarded
by finding a number of valuable vases, and some sculptures of later
date, all of which are now deposited in the Louvre. Judging from the
appearance of a tomb which Mr. Crowe had recently opened, the necropolis
seems to have consisted of tombs built underground. His attention was
attracted to the spot in which this tomb was afterwards discovered by
noticing the hollow sound of his horse’s footsteps when riding over it.
After digging two or three days, his workmen found the entrance in the
end wall, only a few feet below the surface. The interior resembled, in
plan, many of the rock sepulchres at Cyrene and elsewhere, consisting of
an oblong centre chamber with lateral recesses for the sarcophagi. It
was built throughout of isodomous masonry, without mortar. Besides a
large plain marble sarcophagus, it contained two small ones, also of
marble, and highly ornamented with figures in bas-relief. These were
afterwards sent by Mr. Crowe to the British Museum, where they may be
seen among the sculptures from Cyrene.
There is an old Arab at Benghazi, formerly employed by M. de Bourville
both there and at Teuchira, who now spends his time in digging in the
cemetery. His operations are, of course, on a very limited scale; but by
digging small holes at random all over the place, he has found a great
many vases, terra-cotta figures, &c., which he sells to the Maltese
merchants in the town. We were inclined to engage him to go with us to
Cyrene; but as he considered himself entitled to about as much pay as a
dozen workmen, we had to dispense with his services.
[Illustration: PLATE 5.—SUPPOSED ENTRANCE TO THE RIVER LETHE.]
Beyond the cemetery, in the extensive plain of Benghazi, there are
numerous natural hollows or chasms, with steep rocky sides, some of
which still bear the marks of having been used as quarries. Moistened by
the drainage of the surrounding ground, the soil at the bottom of many
of them is covered with a luxuriant vegetation. One of them, about four
miles from Benghazi, known as the “Garden of Osman,” is pretty fairly
cultivated, and contains a well of excellent water. The verdure of these
spots, resembling, as they do, oases in a desert, has given rise to the
conjecture that they are the gardens of the Hesperides.
We also visited a remarkable place, supposed, with a greater degree of
probability, to be an entrance to the subterranean river Lathon, which
has usually been identified with the Lethe. About a mile from the Garden
of Osman we were conducted to the edge of an abrupt ravine, about 100
feet deep, with a dark-looking cavern at the bottom. Leaving our horses
above, we descended the ravine, and entered the cave. At the entrance it
was low and narrow; but after descending a few yards, it suddenly
expanded to a height of fifteen and a width of about forty feet. Some
thirty yards from the entrance we came to the margin of a sheet of
water, which extended as far as the eye could reach. One of our Arab
attendants waded in with a lighted torch, but was obliged to return on
account of the depth of water, after going about fifty yards. Whether
the water is really a river, or only a large subterranean pool, it is
difficult to say. We wished to explore it further, but could not get a
boat at Benghazi small enough to be portable. Some years ago, it was
determined to sink a shaft to the cavern some distance from the mouth,
for the purpose, probably, of making the large supply of water
available; but through an error in the bearings taken by the
superintending officer, the shaft was sunk in the wrong place, and
consequently the water was never reached. The good work was then
abandoned as unlucky, and has not since been resumed.
The harbour of Benghazi is very unsafe, and cannot be entered by vessels
drawing more than six feet of water. The channel at the entrance is
narrow, with a reef of rocks on each side. The outside anchorage is
quite open and unsheltered, so that vessels lying there have to put to
sea when it blows hard from seaward. Instead of doing anything towards
improving the harbour, the authorities do not even prevent vessels from
discharging their ballast into it, and thereby making it gradually
worse. The day before we left, we saw a brig belonging to Benghazi
wrecked on the rocks off the Castle. She had come from Leghorn with a
general cargo, and anchored off the harbour during a stiff breeze from
the S.W., the pilot thinking it unsafe to attempt to enter until the
wind moderated. Her anchors, however, soon gave way, and she drove on
the rocks, where she soon became a total wreck. Had the crew and the
people on shore exerted themselves, they might have saved the greater
part of the cargo; but, with true Mahomedan indifference, they looked on
until it was too late to save more than one or two boat-loads.
The water in the wells at Benghazi is very brackish; so much so, that
the inhabitants are obliged to bring water from sweet wells at some
distance from the town. Some of these are about two miles off, near the
end of the belt of palm-trees; but the best water comes from the wells
on the opposite side of the lagoon. It is carried in skins, or small
breakers, on the backs of camels and donkeys, whose drivers appear to be
the only industrious class of the whole community.
CHAPTER V.
ON the morning of the 12th December, our other preparations being
completed, we commenced loading the camels. The distribution of the
baggage was a very tedious operation, owing chiefly to the quarrelling
of the drivers with each other, every man trying to get as light a load
as possible for his own camel. The baggage required on the journey had
to be kept separate from the rest, and each load had to be divided so as
to balance on the camel’s back,—a complicated arrangement, which led to
endless wrangling on the part of the drivers. It was only after
summoning to our aid the Kaimakam, who threatened them with imprisonment
and bastinado, that we at last got the caravan under weigh. It consisted
of ten camels, on two of which our Maltese servants were mounted, four
camel-drivers and four blacks on foot, and Mr. Cesareo, two guides, and
ourselves on horseback. We left late in the afternoon, and were
accompanied some distance by Mr. Crowe, and his interpreter Mr. Levi. It
was with great regret that we bade him adieu, although little thinking
that we should never see him again. We had spent twelve days with him
most pleasantly, and his kind hospitality had made even Benghazi a
second home to us.
We halted for the night at the “Garden of Osman” mentioned above. This
is a favourite resting-place for caravans starting from Benghazi, as it
has a well of excellent water, with which the Arabs fill their “girbehs”
before proceeding on their journeys. Here we pitched our two tents, one
for our servants and baggage, and the other for Mr. Cesareo and
ourselves. The following morning, after filling our water-skins and
loading the camels, we started at half-past eight, and rode straight
across the plain in the direction of the hills. Before we had reached
them, however, the rain, which had been threatening all the morning,
began to pour in torrents. Further progress was impossible, as the
camels could hardly keep their feet on the soft slippery ground; and we
were consequently obliged to halt about the middle of the day at the
foot of the range of hills known as the Augŭbah of Benghazi. We chose
the best site for encamping we could find, but had great difficulty in
pitching our tents, on account of the high wind and the softness of the
ground, which by this time was saturated with water. We had to make use
of our storm guys, as the ordinary ones were much too short to keep the
tents up by themselves. It was nearly evening before we had everything
snug for the night. Our efforts to light a fire, after innumerable
failures, were finally successful, and soon after dark we had a splendid
bonfire, which had a most cheering effect. The appearance of our little
camp was very striking,—camels kneeling round the tents, horses picketed
here and there, and groups of wild-looking Arabs crouching near the
fire, while all around was perfect darkness. Our Barbary mats proved a
great luxury, as the ground had become a perfect puddle with the
trampling of men and animals. Before we got under the shelter of the
tents, we had ample opportunity of testing the utility of the Arab
burnouses we had bought in Benghazi. The burnous—the origin of the
graceful one worn by ladies in Europe—is a long grey and white striped
woollen cloak with a hood, made throughout in one piece, without seams,
and woven thick and close enough to be waterproof. It is specially
adapted for riding, as it forms a sort of _tente d’abri_ for both horse
and horseman. In fine weather it may be rolled up and strapped to the Ds
of the saddle like a cavalry cloak.
The following day, the 14th, the weather was fine; but we were unable to
start, as the ground was still too slippery for the soft flat feet of
the camels. Meantime, two Arabs arrived, who were sent by the Kaimakam
to act as guides or escort; thus increasing our total number to
seventeen. We would willingly have dispensed with their presence, as
they only added to the number dependent on our rather slender stock of
provisions; but as the Kaimakam insisted on their accompanying us, we
thought it ungracious to send them back, and allowed them to remain. We
spent the day pleasantly enough, walking about the neighbouring hills
and ravines, and shooting partridges. We found neither golden plovers
nor sand-grouse, although they had been very plentiful near Benghazi.
Next morning, as the weather continued fine, we struck our tents, packed
up, and started about half-past nine. We ascended the Augŭbah by a
rugged path winding through a ravine, until we emerged on an extensive
plateau. For some miles the surface was undulating, with here and there
patches of trees and brushwood. In many places the landscape was very
pleasing, and somewhat resembled an English park on a large scale.
During summer the aspect is very different, as the verdure entirely
disappears under the scorching rays of the sun. As we proceeded, the
scene became less and less diversified, until we found ourselves
traversing what appeared a boundless plain, with neither tree nor shrub
to be seen. Some two or three miles to our left, the ground rose
slightly, forming a range of low hills parallel to our route. We saw
very little game, and were only able to add one partridge to our stock.
Shortly before sunset, we turned off our track to the low hills on the
left, where we pitched our tents in a very pretty spot among shrubs and
small trees, about a hundred yards from a Bedouin encampment. A good
fire soon cooked our dinner, which, on this occasion, was improved by
the addition of some mushrooms gathered during the day.
The following morning, the 16th, we started about nine, and continued
our route across the plain nearly in a due easterly direction. There was
a strong southerly wind all day, which was so bitterly cold, that we
were glad to wrap ourselves in our comforters and burnouses for
protection. We were rather astonished at the time to find the cold so
piercing; but we afterwards observed that the south wind, proverbially a
hot one in summer, is invariably the coldest in winter; a fact which may
be accounted for by the effect of the great tract of elevated land which
extends far to the southward, compared with the moderating influence of
the Mediterranean on the north. After riding about eighteen miles, our
path, for four or five miles, lay through a thick wood of juniper and
cedar trees, which for a time sheltered us from the biting wind. When we
had passed the wood, we saw the castle of Merdj about three miles
distant, near the south-western end of the plain of the same name.
Shortly after four o’clock we arrived at the Castle, where we were
warmly welcomed by the Mudir, Hadji Achmet Bin ’l Agha, who had just
arrived from Barca, a district under his rule, to the southward of
Benghazi. Our camels did not arrive till after dark.
Hadji Achmet made us as comfortable as possible in his only room, and
gave us the most sumptuous dinner that could be provided.
During the night the rain began again, and continued at intervals all
next day, so that we were obliged to remain two days until the ground
dried. The delay, however, was not unpleasant, as Hadji Achmet did
everything in his power to make our stay agreeable. He was particularly
jovial and good-humoured; so much so, that it was impossible to be out
of spirits in his company. He enjoyed hearing amusing stories, and had a
fund of them of his own, which he told with great glee. He was descended
from an old and powerful family in Mesurata, near Tripoli, and as
commander of the Koralié, had rendered good service to the Sultan’s
Government during the rebellion of Ghomer. It was by him that Ghomer was
at last taken and slain.
The castles of Merdj and Ghegheb were built about fifteen years ago by
the Turks, and are always occupied by one or two companies of regular
Turkish troops. They were intended as a means of overawing the Arabs,
and assisting the Mudirs in collecting the tribute. They have utterly
failed in attaining the former object; but, inasmuch as they afford a
comparatively safe residence for the Mudir and his money-chest, they may
be said, in some degree, to have accomplished the latter. The Castle or
Gŭsr (Arabicè) of Merdj is a quadrangular casemated building with round
flanking towers at the angles, in each of which an old 9-pounder
carronade is mounted on a superannuated carriage. The garrison at this
time consisted of ninety cavalry, fifty infantry, and three officers.
The room to the left of the entrance is the Mudir’s, that on the right
the prison, and the remainder barracks and stables. The four marble
pillars shown in the Plate were found near the spot, and placed here to
ornament the Mudir’s room. Two of the capitals, of a mixed Corinthian
order, stand near them at the end of the room; the other two are
imitated in stucco. The Castle, although very dilapidated in appearance,
is strong in reality, being built for the most part of squared blocks of
stone found on the spot. It stands a little elevated above the
surrounding plain, on a small plateau formerly the site of Barca, an
offshoot of Cyrene, which attained to considerable size and importance,
and was one of the five cities which constituted the Pentapolis. Remains
of the ancient city may be seen in the materials of which the Castle is
built, and in the walls of the few wretched houses which have sprung up
near it; but none of them are worthy of any note. Near the gate of the
Castle, however, there is a deep well lined with masonry, evidently of
ancient date, which was discovered during the building of the Castle by
some workmen, who were digging for blocks of stone. It yields an
abundant supply of water, which, although very brackish, is a great boon
to the surrounding country during summer.
[Illustration: PLATE 6.—CASTLE AND VILLAGE OF MERDJ (BARCA).]
The plain of Merdj is of great extent, measuring upwards of twenty miles
in length, and from six to eight in breadth. It is perfectly level, and
is surrounded by ranges of hills, of which those on the east rise to a
height of about 500 feet above the plain. As seen from the hills, it
appears to have been at one time the bed of a lake. Its elevation above
the sea is probably about 1,000 feet. The soil is a deep rich loam,
about one third of which is under cultivation, and yields abundant crops
of wheat and barley. The rest of the plain is good grazing land, and is
much frequented by Arab encampments with their flocks during the early
part of summer, before the pools which have formed in winter are dried
up.
The weather having cleared up, we again got the caravan together, and
started on the morning of the 19th. The ground was still rather soft, so
that the camels could only walk at a slow and cautious pace. Our kind
host had loaded us with as many provisions as we could carry; among
other things, a sheep, bread, butter, and dates, and barley for the
horses. We shall always have a pleasant recollection of Gŭsr Merdj and
its hospitable Governor, Hadji Achmet Bin ’l Agha (Pilgrim Achmet the
Son of the Ruler).
[Illustration: PLATE 7.—MUDIR’S ROOM IN THE CASTLE OF MERDJ.]
After crossing the plain in a north-easterly direction, we reached the
hills about mid-day. As we approached the verge of the plain, the
country became well wooded, the hills at the base being covered with
olives, and higher up with pines and junipers. A large quantity of oil
might be made every year from the olives; but the Arabs are either
ignorant of its value or too careless to take the trouble of collecting
the berries, which are left to be eaten by the goats. The remainder of
the day’s journey was chiefly through thick woods, in which we saw, for
the first time, the arbutus, which was then in full bloom, being covered
with both flower and fruit. The berries are of a bright red colour,
somewhat resembling strawberries in appearance, and, although not
luscious, are by no means disagreeable when quite ripe, notwithstanding
Pliny’s remark that they are called _unedo_, because he who has eaten
one will never wish to eat another. The bark is useful for tanning
purposes, and good charcoal has been made from the wood.
After travelling eight hours, we encamped for the night by some wells in
an open cultivated plain. The camels, as usual, were late in coming up,
and it was quite dark before we got the tents pitched. While waiting for
their arrival, we shot a good many golden plover.
The following day, we continued our journey through a very beautiful
country, the track passing over a succession of hills, from the summits
of which we had many extensive views. The valleys, enclosed by the well-
wooded sides of the hills, were frequently quite picturesque. To relieve
the monotony of the march, we used to ride on some miles ahead of the
caravan with one or two of the guides, until we reached a likely place
for game, where, leaving our horses in charge of the guides, we walked
about the covers shooting what we could find till the caravan came up.
In this way, we kept up our supplies without being obliged to encroach
on our small stock of preserved meat. This day we got a couple of hares,
seven partridges, and twenty-five golden plovers. We encamped at night
in the bottom of a ravine, where we found some water in the hollows of
the rock.
Next day, the 21st, we passed over a similar tract of country, the
features of which, however, became more strongly marked as we advanced,
the hills becoming higher and steeper, and more frequently intersected
by rugged ravines. Towards evening, we encamped by the side of an
ancient hill-fortress, doubtless of Roman construction, called by the
Arabs Gŭsr Biligadem, which occupies a most commanding position on the
top of a hill. The scenery in the immediate neighbourhood is very
beautiful, and the view from the Castle is one of the finest and most
extensive in the Cyrenaica. The Castle is an oblong building, measuring
160 feet by 80, with a square flanking tower in the centre of each of
the longer sides. It is still wonderfully perfect, the walls in some
parts still standing to a height of 40 feet. Traces of a ditch and
counterscarp may also be seen on two of its sides. It is built
throughout of large squared blocks without mortar, and each wall is
double, consisting, in fact, of two walls built close to each other, but
without any connecting bond. Over the entrance, there is a double arch,
the inner one of which is built on the radiating, and the outer on the
more ancient horizontal principle. Near the Castle, there is a large
well, now choked up, and a number of tombs cut in the sides of the rock.
Forts in similar positions occur in different parts of the Cyrenaica,
none of which, however, are nearly so perfect as Biligadem. They were
most probably built by the Romans soon after they acquired possession of
the country, and were placed so as to protect the communications between
the different cities.
The following day, the 22nd, we started as early as possible, in the
hope of reaching Cyrene before sunset; but, owing to an error on the
part of the guide, night overtook us about four hours’ distance from our
destination. Immediately after leaving Biligadem, we descended into a
deep narrow ravine with rocky sides, called the Wady Il Aggur, the
bottom of which was covered with pines of immense size. Under the pines,
there was a perfect thicket of smaller trees and shrubs, such as the
carub or locust-tree, the juniper, oleander, &c. After winding along
this Wady for five hours without seeing any possible means of exit, we
turned up a smaller ravine to our left, and managed to climb to the top.
Soon afterwards, we passed the Zauyah El Beidah, the only modern
building we had seen after leaving Benghazi, except the Castle of Merdj.
A _Zauyah_ in Barbary is a sort of Mahomedan monastery and mosque
combined. The resident devotees, called _Achwan_, who, except in the
matter of celibacy, somewhat resemble monks, are under a chief, called
the _Sheikh El Zauyah_, a man of immense influence, as we afterwards
learned by most unpleasant experience. They belong to the sect of El
Senoussy, so called from the name of the founder, who died not many
years ago. Their chief object appears to be the revival of the
fanaticism and intolerance of the good old times of the true faith.
As it began to get dark soon after we had passed the Zauyah El Beidah,
we were obliged to halt and encamp for the night.
[Illustration: Pl. 8.
ENCAMPMENT NEAR A ROMAN FORTRESS (GŬSR BILIGADEM)
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
Next morning, the 23rd, we started at nine, and after a three hours’
ride, arrived at Cyrene soon after midday. It was a cold gusty day, and
before we had reached our destination, the rain was falling in torrents.
The mist prevented our seeing to any distance; but the country
immediately around us, being perfectly destitute of trees and even
shrubs, looked desolate in the extreme. Meantime, we sought temporary
shelter from the storm in some rock tombs near the Fountain of Apollo.
When the rain had somewhat abated, we selected the cleanest and most
convenient of them for our future residence, and immediately set to work
to clear out the earth and rubbish with which it was nearly filled. When
the caravan arrived, some three hours afterwards, the drivers were so
impatient to be off, that they would not even stay to assist us in
getting the baggage under shelter. Our first night in our new quarters
was certainly rather cheerless. Bags and boxes soaked with the rain lay
in confusion on the muddy floor of the tomb, and no dinner could be had
for want of a fire to cook it.
We spent the whole of the next day in making our quarters as comfortable
as possible. The tomb we ourselves occupied was at the bottom of a steep
hill about 250 yards from the Fountain, and almost overhead there was a
long range of larger chambers also cut in the rock, which we used as
servants’ quarters, kitchen, stable, &c. Our room had two doors or
openings, one of which we built half-way up with stones and mud, leaving
the upper part open to serve as a window. The mats which we had bought
at Benghazi made an excellent carpet, and one of them suspended over the
entrance was a good substitute for a door. In the course of time, we
gradually improved our quarters by paving the entrance with tiles,
making steps up to the kitchen, &c. We contrived to build quite a
respectable door with rough planks cut from the trunks of trees.
[Illustration: PLATE 9.—INTERIOR OF OUR TOMB OF RESIDENCE.]
Having found on our arrival at Tripoli that our firman gave us authority
to dig for sculptures, and remove such as we found, we were anxious
before leaving Benghazi, to engage a few workmen to accompany us. Mr.
Crowe accordingly got us four negroes, whose liberation from slavery he
had recently obtained from the Kaimakam. Three of them having only just
been brought from the interior, could hardly speak a word of Arabic.
They seemed very glad to go with us, and all went well till we reached
Merdj, where we were told one morning, to our astonishment, that they
had enlisted as soldiers. Our friend, the Mudir, immediately ordered
them to be brought before him, but the only explanation he could get
from them was, that they preferred becoming soldiers to being killed.
They appeared to be highly indignant about something, and determined not
to go on with us. Some soldiers were also interrogated, but no
explanation could be elicited. It afterwards came out, however, that
some of the black soldiers had assured them that we were taking them
into the desert to cut their throats, and look for treasure with their
blood. The Mudir, with great difficulty, induced them to remain with us,
but it was some days before they were quite convinced of the innocence
of our intentions.
[Illustration: PLATE 10.—OUR WORKMEN—SALEH, MOHAMMED AND ABDULLAH.
_From a Photograph._]
[Illustration: Pl. 11.
WESTERN HILL OF CYRENE, WITH ENTRANCE TO THE FOUNTAIN OF APOLLO
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
CHAPTER VI.
THE site of the ancient city of Cyrene is called by the Arabs,
_Shahat_—a name which is rather indefinite, as it includes, besides the
city, the adjoining district to the east, north, and west, that to the
southward being called _Grennah_, a corruption evidently of the original
Greek name. As the Fountain of Apollo is well known throughout the
Cyrenaica, the traveller desirous of visiting Cyrene should ask for
_’Ain Shahat_, the Fountain of Shahat.
To understand the position of Cyrene, it is necessary to consider the
general configuration of the country. From near Benghazi on the west to
beyond Derna on the east, a range of hills about 1,000 feet high runs
nearly parallel to the shore, at a distance from it varying from one to
three miles. This range in the neighbourhood of Cyrene forms the
northern or seaward boundary of a belt of table-land about eight miles
in breadth, the southern or inland boundary of which is a second range
of hills parallel to the first, and rising about 1,000 feet above the
table-land. An upper plateau extends many miles inland from the summit
of this interior range, at an elevation of nearly 2,000 feet above the
level of the sea.
The lower range is exceedingly steep, and in many parts precipitous; so
that, except at particular places, it is quite impassable. The upper
range, on the other hand, although steep, is not precipitous, and is
intersected by numerous ravines or _wadys_ leading from the plateau
above. Thus the face of this range presents to the eye a succession of
rounded ridges, with intermediate furrows of various depths. Cyrene
stands on the edge of the upper plateau, and occupies the summits of two
of the ridges and the upper part of the intervening furrow.
One of the principal features of this site is this furrow or ravine
between the two hills on which the city is built. It begins near the
eastern wall of the city, and widens as it descends towards the face of
the hills, where it is bridged across, so to speak, by a massive
retaining wall, behind which it is partially filled up and levelled, so
as to form an artificial platform. The Fountain of Apollo here issues
from a passage in the rock on the western side, and the water, after
traversing the platform, falls over the retaining wall into the ravine
below.
This copious fountain of delicious water doubtless led the original
Greek colonists to settle at Cyrene. The excavated channel from which it
flows is in many respects so remarkable, that it deserves more than a
cursory notice. The following description, which was verified by Captain
Porcher, is given by Beechey:—
“The channel is formed entirely in the rock from which the stream
issues, and runs in an irregular course for nearly a quarter of a mile
into the bowels of the mountain. The sides and roof of the passage are
flat, where time and the action of the current (which is very strong)
have not worn them away; but the bottom is encumbered with stones,
bedded fast in a quantity of clay which has accumulated about it and
against the sides. The general height of this subterranean channel is
scarcely five feet, an elevation which we found rather inconvenient, for
it obliged us to stoop a good deal in advancing; and as it would not
have been possible to examine the place properly, or, indeed, to have
preserved the light, without keeping the head and body in an upright
position, we usually found the water making higher encroaches than its
chilling cold rendered agreeable.
“In some places, however, where there appear to have been originally
flaws or fissures in the rock, the roof was irregular, and there was
room to stand upright, an occurrence of which we very gladly availed
ourselves, to the great relief of our knees. We found the average width
from three to four feet, although in the places just mentioned it was
occasionally as much as six feet; and were it not for the clay which has
been collected against the sides, we should often have suffered from
their roughness. From the irregularity of the course of the passage we
were obliged to take bearings very often, and at each time we stopped
for this purpose we took down the distance, measured with our chain,
between the point we stopped at and the last; so that, after much
trouble, we succeeded in obtaining a tolerably correct plan of the
whole. The length and course of the channel will be seen in the plan of
Cyrene. Within forty feet of the end of the channel (that is to say,
about 1,300 feet from its beginning at the foot of the cliff) it becomes
so low that a man cannot advance further without creeping upon his hands
and knees, and then finishes in a small aperture scarcely a foot in
diameter, beyond which, of course, it is impossible to penetrate.
“We observed, after continuing our route for some time, that the clay
which we have already mentioned had been washed down in considerable
quantities by the current, was occasionally plastered against the sides
of the passage, and smoothed very carefully with the palm of the hand;
in this we thought we perceived that something like letters had been
scratched, which we should scarcely have thought it worth while to
examine, had we not been curious to know what Europeans had visited the
place before us. Our first conclusion was that some of our own party had
taken this method of writing their names on the wall; and it never for a
moment occurred to us, that the characters, whatever they were, which
might be traced on so perishable a surface, were of more than very
recent formation. Our surprise may, in consequence, be readily imagined,
when we found, on a closer examination, that the walls of the place were
covered with Greek inscriptions; some of which, from their dates, must
have remained on the wet clay for more than fifteen hundred years. They
consist, of course, chiefly in a collection of names; many of which are
Roman, and the earliest of the most conspicuous dates, which we remarked
and copied, were those of the reign of Diocletian. They are, in general,
very rudely scratched, with a point of any kind (a sword, or a knife,
perhaps, or the stone of a ring) and often with the point of the
fingers.
“Several hours had elapsed from the time of our entering the channel to
that of our reappearance at its mouth; and we really believe that the
Arabs of the place, who had collected themselves round the fountain to
see us come out, were extremely disappointed to find that no accident
had befallen any of our party, in spite of the demons so confidently
believed to haunt its dark and mysterious recesses. For our own parts,
we could not help laughing very heartily at the ridiculous appearance
which each of us exhibited on first coming to the light, covered as we
were from head to foot with the brown clay accumulated in the channel of
the fountain, which had adhered too closely to be washed away by the
stream, although its current, as we have mentioned, was extremely
rapid.”
The mouth of the channel is in an open chamber cut in the face of the
cliff, the bottom of which is about five feet lower than the bed of the
stream, which falls over in a little cascade. Immediately above the fall
the bottom of the channel is deepened and widened so as to form a cavity
about six feet long and two feet deep. Filled, as it always was, with
the clear, cool water of the fountain, a more delicious bath could
hardly be imagined. It was, in fact, a perfect luxury during the long
summer of our residence at Cyrene. The water was of the uniform
temperature of 55° Fahrenheit, fresh and cool in summer, and not too
cold in winter.
[Illustration: Pl. 12.
FOUNTAIN OF APOLLO
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
The face of the cliff over the entrance to the chambers is marked by a
channel cut in the rock, into which the pediment of a portico appears to
have been inserted, as shown in the sketch Plate 11. On a part of the
cliff, at right angles to this face, and immediately over the entrance
to the fountain is the following inscription:—
LΙΓΔΙΟΝΥΣΙΟΣΣΩΤΑ
ΙΕΡΕΙΤΕΥΩΝΤΑΝΚΡΑΝΑΝ
ΕΠΕΣΚΕΥΑΣΕ
Λιγ Διονύσιος Σώτα ἱερειτεύων τὰν κράναν ἐπεσκεύασε. This inscription is
published, Böckh, Corpus Inscriptionum, III. No. 5134.
[Illustration: Pl. 13.
GENERAL VIEW OF ONE OF THE HILLS IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS OF CYRENE
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
Nearly parallel to the centre ravine, is another bounding the city on
the south, called the _Wady Bil Ghadir_, or Valley of Verdure, which
extends across the lower plateau to the sea. Several fountains pour
their waters into it at Cyrene, so that even in the height of summer it
quite justifies the name it bears. Its western side, which is very steep
and rugged, is clad with fine old cypresses, and lower down, the myrtle
and oleander grow in luxuriant abundance. The form of the city is nearly
that of a right-angled isosceles triangle, the hypothenuse of which,
facing the N.W., is formed by the general line of the face of the hills
overlooking the lower plateau. Of the two sides containing the right
angle, the southern is formed by the Wady Bil Ghadir, and the eastern,
by an artificial line on the upper plateau, between the Wady Bil Ghadir
and the face of the Cyrene range.
[Illustration: PLATE 14.—LARGE TOMB AT THE EASTERN END OF THE NORTHERN
NECROPOLIS.]
From this description, it will be seen that the city is naturally
defended on two of its three sides, by a deep rugged ravine and the
steep faces of a high range of hills. The remaining side, the east, is
defended by a wall still distinctly traceable, the continuation of which
is so carried along the edge of the Wady Bil Ghadir, and over the brows
of the hills into the central ravine, where it joins the massive
retaining wall already mentioned. The _enceinte_ being thus completed,
the summit of the western hill was chosen with great judgment for the
citadel. On its exterior sides are the Wady Bil Ghadir, several hundred
feet deep, and the steep face of the hill itself cut into a succession
of escarps and terraces of rock. Quite unassailable on two of its sides,
and nearly so on a third, the citadel is cut off from the rest of the
city by an inner wall of defence, well provided with flanking towers,
which is carried along the edge of the centre ravine and across the hill
to the Wady Bil Ghadir, where its junction with the main wall of the
city is marked by the conspicuous ruins of a lofty tower.
[Illustration: PLATE 15.—TOMB IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS.]
By far the most striking remains of the former grandeur of the city are
the cemeteries, which consist, for the most part, of tombs hewn out of
the solid rock, many of which are still, in very perfect condition. They
extend for miles in every direction outside the walls of the city, but
the most remarkable are in the steep face of the range of hills
overlooking the lower plateau, and in the sides of the ravines by which
this range is intersected. The cemetery in the Wady Bil Ghadir, and on
the face of the hill beyond it, is the most picturesque, and probably
the most ancient, while that immediately below the city, to the N. and
N.E., is the most extensive. The tombs on the upper plateau, to the
southward of the city, are generally built above ground, except in the
sides of small ravines, where sepulchres are excavated in the scarped
face of the rock.
[Illustration: Pl. 16.
RANGE OF TOMBS IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS OF CYRENE
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
The tombs on the faces of the hills are generally arranged in long
terraces, the rock being cut or stepped into a series of perpendicular
escarps in which the tombs are excavated. The roads which follow the
terraces in front of the escarps, are consequently flanked on one side
by tombs for a considerable distance from the city. Besides these rows
or streets of tombs, others occur irregularly, where the formation of
the rock happens to be adapted for their excavation. There are some,
also, wholly or partially built, and on the slopes between the terraces
the rock is frequently cut into groups of single sarcophagi. The
excavated tombs are of almost endless variety. In some, the façade is
cut out like the front of a small temple, with columns, architraves,
pediments, &c., nearly all of which are of the Doric order. The columns,
with the recess behind, form a portico over the entrance to the tomb,
which generally consists of a rectangular chamber, with recesses round
the sides for the reception of the sarcophagi.
[Illustration: Pl. 17.
INTERIOR OF A TOMB IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS OF CYRENE
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
[Illustration: PLATE 18.—TOMBS TO THE WESTWARD OF WADY BIL GHADIR.
_From a Photograph._]
In tombs of this description, but without porticoes, the entrance is
simply a doorway cut in the face of the rock, in some instances
perfectly plain, in others embellished with lintels and pilasters, or
with busts, as in Plate 19. The interior of this one is shown in Plate
33, and shows that the peculiar form of the chamber depended on the
soundness of the rock. The chamber itself is usually without ornament of
any kind, but in many tombs its walls are adorned with fresco-painting
or carving. The sarcophagi are frequently arranged in tiers, in long
narrow recesses, with three or four placed lengthways in each tier, as
shown in Plates 20 and 32. In some cases, the sarcophagus is simply a
trough, like a horse’s manger, cut longitudinally in a niche in the side
of the chamber, as shown in the section (Plates 17 and 31); in others,
where the tomb consists of a single chamber, or a succession of
chambers, without recesses or niches, the sarcophagi are either placed
on the floor or dug out of the rock beneath it, like shallow graves.
The above are the principal varieties of the construction of what may be
called the _chamber_ tombs.
Among the painted tombs, the only one that remains to exhibit the skill
of the artist is situated on the side of a ravine, in the middle of the
Northern Necropolis, and immediately under a range of tombs shown in
Plate 16. The exterior is perfectly plain, and contains only a small
chamber with a sepulchral vault in the centre. All the walls were
originally covered with paintings; and by the appearance of the colours
that are still left, and come out, when wetted, as bright as the day
they were put on, show that the former inhabitants must have understood
the art to perfection, as the damp of so many centuries has not yet
obliterated them.
On one side is a procession, composed of thirty-six figures, performing
a solemn march; some having on rich dresses, whilst others are covered
with very little drapery, giving the idea of the lower classes of the
people of Cyrene taking their subordinate part in the festival. At the
head of the painting is a piece of furniture, near which are some young
people employed in cooking,—no doubt, showing what followed their
popular festivals. Near the end are three mitred people standing near a
pedestal, and a table covered with crowns and palm-leaves. A number of
Greek names are scratched over the picture, denoting, probably, the
people shown in the drawing.
The paintings on the opposite side to this have nearly disappeared, and
the other two are occupied with hunting scenes, and a variety of games.
[Illustration: PLATE 19.—A TOMB EMBELLISHED WITH FIGURES IN THE NORTHERN
NECROPOLIS.]
In one part a deer and hares are seen escaping from dogs, and a hunter
in the act of letting loose another. Near this there is a group of
wilder animals, such as a bull attacked by a lion, a leopard and gazelle
chased by dogs, and spears flying about in all directions. These seem to
allude to the worship of Diana, one of the principal divinities of the
Cyrenians.
On the remaining side are gladiators attacking each other with short
swords, and defended by shields,—boxing, wrestling, and chariot-races.
These last may be particularly noticed, as the Cyrenians were extremely
eminent for their equestrian talents, and especially for their skill in
charioteering; and seem to have excelled all the neighbouring nations so
much in this sport, that they sought to perpetuate their fame by having
their coins struck with them.
[Illustration: Pl. 20.
TOMB FOR 105 SARCOPHAGI IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS OF CYRENE
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
All these paintings were published by Pacho, as well as others that have
now disappeared; and, to give the reader some idea of how these tombs
were formerly ornamented, and the expense the inhabitants must have
incurred to embellish this city of their dead, we will give a short
account of one that was seen both by Pacho and Beechey. A series of
paintings were found on the metopes of the frieze in the interior, and
the walls were coloured light green, making the chamber appear as though
it was intended more for a habitation for the living than a receptacle
for the dead. These appear to have been the different occupations of a
black slave. First, a friendly conversation; then the education of a
young girl; the pride of dress; the relaxation of the swing; the bath,
so necessary in this warm climate; and, lastly, the death-bed on which
the negress is laid, with her eyes closed, and the white Cyrenian
standing by her side in the attitude of grief, lamenting her decease.
[Illustration: Pl. 21.
INTERIOR OF A PAINTED TOMB IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS OF CYRENE
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
By the description of these two tombs the reader can easily understand
what a magnificent necropolis this must formerly have been; and when the
exteriors, as well as the interiors, were ornamented with sculpture,
combined with the beautiful scenery around, the traveller would have
been well repaid by a visit to it.
[Illustration: PLATE 22.—INTERIOR OF A TOMB IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS.]
In Plate 21 is shown the interior of a tomb in the Northern Necropolis,
where the painting is still very perfect and the colours bright.
In Plate 17 is a highly ornamented tomb adjoining the Kenissieh, with
the height of eleven feet. The shells over three of the sarcophagi are
cut out of the solid rock, and are in as good a state of preservation as
when they were first sculptured. The niche on the right and the nearest
to the entrance was ornamented round the arch with a band of bright
vermilion, and the centre filled up with garlands, birds, and three
figures, the centre and largest one with wings.
In Plate 22 is seen a smaller tomb, also with shells more gracefully
shaped, and equally in as good a state of preservation.
Quarries were met with in many places, and these, after the buildings in
the vicinity had been erected, and when no longer required, were also
converted into tombs, according to the general practice of the Greeks.
Plate 23 shows the interior of one that has been used for this purpose,
situated on the upper part of the hill in the Northern Necropolis. It
had a large chamber measuring 27½ feet in length, and 13 feet in
breadth.
[Illustration: PLATE 23.—INTERIOR OF A TOMB CUT IN THE SIDE OF A QUARRY
IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS.]
A class, perhaps not less numerous, consists of tombs without chambers,
the sarcophagus recesses being cut directly into the face of the rock.
These recesses, which contain several tiers of sarcophagi, like those
already described (Plates 20 and 32), run into the rock perpendicular to
the line of the escarp, or nearly so. Each tomb consists of from one to
ten or twelve such recesses, separated from each other by thin
partitions. Their fronts are quite as varied as those of the chamber
ones, some being perfectly plain, while others have the ends of the
partitions made to represent columns or pilasters, surmounted by
architrave, frieze, and cornice. In some tombs of this description,
where the rock fails, the _Order_ is completed with masonry. In the
western cemetery, many of these _recess_ tombs, if we may so call them,
are provided with porticoes like those already mentioned, and
consequently have an outer façade with columns, and an inner one with
pilasters, like the front of a Greek temple. The inner façades, not
being exposed to the action of the weather, are still in an almost
perfect state of preservation. Even in the minutest detail of the
architecture they are finished with the greatest care and nicety, the
fluting of the pilasters, the moulding of the cornice, &c., having that
peculiarly delicate sharpness for which the buildings of the Greeks are
so remarkable. Plate 37 represents one of these internal façades,
showing the colours as they still exist.
[Illustration: Pl. 24.
INTERIOR OF A LARGE TOMB IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS OF CYRENE
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
[Illustration: Pl. 25.
TOMBS IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS OF CYRENE
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
In tombs of all kinds the entrances to the chambers, and the openings of
the recesses, have been closed by single slabs of stone, either quite
plain or panelled like a door.
The tombs are as various in size as in design. In some, the chamber is
not more than six feet square, and hardly high enough to stand upright
in, while others may be found with a total length of seventy, and a
height of from ten to fifteen feet.
[Illustration: PLATE 26.—TOMBS IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS (CALLED BY THE
ARABS “KENISSIEH”).]
One of this length is shown in Plates 24 and 35, which was the longest
we saw for a single tomb. A short distance from this one, higher up the
hill, and flanking the path that led to Marsa Sousah, was a much more
extensive range of tombs, which were called by the Arabs the Kenissieh,
and seems from the great number of sarcophagi to have been used as a
public cemetery. A plan of the interior has been given by Pacho, and the
exterior is shown in Plate 26, and extended to a much greater depth into
the side of the hill, as it measured 128 feet by 68 feet in breadth. In
the interior we found a large marble sarcophagus, and two marble
pedestals with the following inscriptions:—
ΑΡΓΕΙΟΣ ΑΓΑΘΟΚΛΕ
ΕΝΙΟΣ LΚ
ΑΡΓΕΙΟΣ
ΔΕΙΝ
The _built_ tombs are constructed on the same principles as the
excavated ones. The greater number of them contain two compartments,
similar to the recesses, with four sarcophagi in two tiers in each
compartment (Plates 28 and 36); but many other kinds occur, some of
which are of great size. Unlike the rock tombs, which from their nature
are almost indestructible, most of these are now in ruins.
Fewer inscriptions exist in the tombs than might have been expected.
Those which we found were generally only a list of names.
The sites of the cemeteries seem to have been chosen with great care, as
they occupy many of the finest positions around the city. Those on the
faces of the hills command a magnificent view of the lower plateau,
bounded in the distance by the sea. One of these is shown in Plate 27.
It is situated to the westward of the Temple of Apollo, and immediately
below the theatre in that quarter, and had the finest external façade.
It was originally ornamented by a colonnade of six pillars, 75 feet in
length, and by its size and finish was doubtless intended for some
family of importance. The principal room measured 41 feet by 37 feet,
with a height of 15 feet, and in it were found fragments of marble
sarcophagi, with elaborate bas-reliefs. It is now used by the Arabs as a
large granary for their corn, and has lost some of its beauty in
consequence of the falling away of the middle part of the colonnade from
the rock to which it was joined. The ravines, also, which have been
selected are remarkable for their picturesque beauty. On the upper
plateau, to the southward and eastward of the city, where most of the
built tombs are to be found, every undulation of the surface is taken
advantage of. In addition to the large cemeteries in the more immediate
neighbourhood of the city, the roads in all directions are flanked by
tombs for several miles, like the Via Appia, at Rome.
[Illustration: PLATE 27.—LARGE TOMB ON THE FACE OF THE WESTERN HILL OF
CYRENE.]
The various plans and sketches we have given will, it is hoped, enable
the reader to form a pretty accurate idea of the appearance of these
truly wonderful cemeteries. In regard to extent, variety, and wonderful
preservation, the Necropolis of Cyrene, as a whole, is probably quite
unrivalled.
[Illustration: Pl. 28.
BUILT TOMB ON THE SOUTH-WEST SIDE OF CYRENE
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
Of the city itself very little remains to be seen. A few walls cropping
a foot or two above the surface of the ground, and some broken columns,
mutilated statues, and blocks of stone strewn about in different places,
are almost the only objects that attract the attention of the traveller
on first walking over the site of the city; but many traces of former
buildings are discovered on a more minute examination of the ground. As
already stated, a central valley traverses the city from south-east to
north-west, dividing it into two portions, the Eastern and Western. Of
the two, although nearly equal in extent, the Western contains by far
the greater number of remains of ancient buildings; but the part of the
city most thickly covered with ruins is the artificial platform at the
mouth of the ravine, in front of the Fountain of Apollo. On the south-
eastern side of the city, around the head of the valley, the ground is
covered with ruins of a much later period. Their general style and
appearance leave little doubt of their being the remains of the
Christian city of Cyrene, in the time of the Byzantine empire.
[Illustration: Pl. 29.
RUINS OF THE CHRISTIAN CITY OF CYRENE
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
We shall presently have occasion to describe the remains of the
principal buildings, in giving an account of our excavations.
Many of the ancient roads can be easily traced for several miles from
the city. The one to Apollonia, the seaport of Cyrene, is quite distinct
the whole way, a distance of about twelve miles. Passing the city wall
on the side of the eastern hill, opposite the Fountain of Apollo, it
descends to the lower plateau by a uniform incline about two miles in
length, through the north-eastern cemetery, on the face of the range.
For the greater part of the descent it is made by cutting into the side
of the hill, the escarp thus formed being taken advantage of for the
excavation of tombs, as already explained. Where a sufficient width is
not obtained by simply cutting into the rock, the road is widened by
embanking and revetting the lower side. In the descent of the lower
range, the road is similarly constructed. Great skill is shown by the
way in which it is laid out, so as to reduce the steepness of the
gradient as much as possible. Another road, similar in every respect to
this one, leaves the city at the large retaining wall at the mouth of
the centre Wady, and descends to the lower plateau along the face of the
western hill. Many roads also exist on the comparatively level ground of
the upper plateau. Of these, the most important is the one by which we
first approached the city, and which, without doubt, was the great
highway of the west leading to Barca, Ptolemais, Teuchira, and Berenice.
It enters the city by a gateway in the southern wall, near the head of
the Wady Bil Ghadir. But perhaps the most remarkable road, if we
consider the care and labour shown in its construction, is the one
leading down the Wady Bil Ghadir, and along the face of the hills to the
westward of the city. It leaves the city by the gate of the western
road; whence, after making a sudden bend to the north, it follows the
bottom of the Wady to near its mouth. In one place, where the bottom of
the ravine is very narrow, the rock is cut away like a wall on each side
to make room for the road. At this point, and at intervals lower down,
may be seen the remains of an aqueduct cut in the rock to convey the
water of the various fountains in the valley round the face of the
citadel hill. It could not possibly have led to the city itself, and was
therefore most probably made for the irrigation of gardens on a lower
level. The greater part of it is an open conduit cut in the face of the
rock; but at some points it is cut like a small tunnel.
On the south of the citadel, where the ravine approaches the face of the
range, its bed falls abruptly to the level of the lower plateau, causing
the stream from the fountains above to pour over the rocks in a
succession of waterfalls. The road, which to this point had followed the
bottom of the Wady, had consequently to be turned to the left along the
face of the hill, which at this corner becomes a sheer precipice both
above and below. The road is carried round it by means of a huge
retaining wall built up to the proper level from the bottom of the
cliff. It is still nearly perfect throughout its entire length, except
at the end in the ravine, where a few of the stones have been displaced.
About the middle of the wall, the cliff recedes some 30 or 40 feet, and
as the wall is carried straight across, a platform of considerable size
is thereby formed. Here a copious fountain of delicious water issues
from a cavity in the face of the cliff, from which a small aqueduct cut
in the rock runs along the side of the road for several miles. Close to
the fountain it was formerly hollowed out into a series of troughs, so
arranged that, by the overflow of each passing to the next, they were
always full,—a slight indication of the attention paid by the Cyrenians
to the wants of the horses, for which their country was so celebrated.
One can easily fancy the citizens of Cyrene halting in their evening
drives at this beautiful spot to water their horses and enjoy the
extensive view of the magnificent scenery around. On one hand is the
high and rugged face of the cliff overhanging the ravine below; on the
other the steep hill of Cyrene rising from the beautiful valley of
verdure at its base; while far below lies the varied surface of the
lower plateau, stretching away for miles to the dark blue line of sea
beyond.
The following graphic description of this scene is given by Beechey:—
“The steep sides of the descent are thickly overgrown with the most
beautiful flowering shrubs and creepers, and tall trees are growing in
the wildest forms and positions above and below the roads. The Duke of
Clarence (when the choice of his death was proposed to him) had a fancy
to be drowned in a butt of Malmsey: and we think, if we found ourselves
in a similar dilemma, that we should pitch upon some part of this
charming ravine, as the spot from which we could hurl ourselves through
myrtles and oleanders into the pure stream which dashes below, with more
pleasure than one could leap with from life into death in most other
places that we know of. We must, however, confess that, in passing along
the dangerous parts of the galleries here alluded to, no such fancy ever
entered our heads; and we took especial care, notwithstanding the beauty
of the descent, to keep closer to the high rock on one side of the road
than to the edge of the charming precipice on the other.”
From this point the road winds along the face of the hill towards the
westward, gradually descending to the level of the plain. Near the
platform it is flanked on the left by a most picturesque row of
excavated tombs, the interior façade of one is given in Plate 37. Before
reaching the plain, the road crosses a small ravine, which contains a
larger number of highly finished tombs than any other part of the
Necropolis. One of them, published by Beechey, had a suite of
allegorical figures painted on the metopes of the inner façade; but on
visiting it we were much disappointed to find the beautiful front
completely destroyed, the whole of the entablature being roughly cut
away, evidently for the purpose of obtaining the paintings.[2] It is to
be hoped that they at least were safely removed, and that this beautiful
tomb was not destroyed altogether in vain. It is, doubtless, right and
proper that the remains of ancient art brought to light by excavation,
or which, from their position, are liable at any moment to destruction,
should be removed to a place of safety, where they may be studied and
admired; but it is certainly carrying out this practice to an
unwarrantable extent to destroy a beautiful structure that has survived
the ravages of two thousand years, for the sake of what by itself is of
comparatively little value.
[Illustration: Pl. 30.
WADY MŬCHGŬN, TWO MILES TO THE WESTWARD OF CYRENE
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
[Illustration: Pl. 31.
CYRENE. PLAN OF AN ORNAMENTED AND PAINTED TOMB IN THE NORTHERN
NECROPOLIS. BY COMMANDER E. A. PORCHER R.N.
Day & Son, Lith. to the Queen]
[Illustration: Pl. 32.
CYRENE. PLAN OF A TOMB IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS, CAPABLE OF HOLDING
105 SARCOPHAGI. BY COMMANDER E. A. PORCHER R.N.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
[Illustration: Pl. 33.
CYRENE. PLAN OF A TOMB IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS. BY COMMANDER E. A.
PORCHER R.N.
_Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen_]
[Illustration: Pl. 34.
CYRENE. PLAN OF A TOMB IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS. BY COMMANDER E. A.
PORCHER R.N.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
[Illustration: Pl. 35.
CYRENE. PLAN OF A TOMB IN THE NORTHERN NECROPOLIS. BY COMMANDER E. A.
PORCHER R.N.
_Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen_]
[Illustration: Pl. 36.
CYRENE. PLAN OF A BUILT TOMB ON THE S.W. SIDE OF THE CITY. BY COMMANDER
E. A. PORCHER R.N.
Day & Son, Lith. to the Queen]
[Illustration: Pl. 37.
ELEVATION OF THE INTERNAL FACADE OF A TOMB IN THE WESTERN NECROPOLIS OF
CYRENE. Shewing the Colours as they now exist, by Commander E. A.
Porcher R.N.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.]
About a mile from the face of the range, the Wady Bil Ghadir is joined
in the lower plateau by the continuation of the central ravine of the
city. The space thereby enclosed is an almost perfectly level plain,
about a mile in length and three-quarters of a mile in breadth. The soil
is exceedingly rich, and yields at the present day the finest crops of
grain in the country. Spread like a map at the base of the hills,
directly in front of the city, it seems specially suited for a large
ornamental garden, and was most probably laid out as such by the
inhabitants of Cyrene. It lies immediately below the Fountain of Apollo,
and an aqueduct, as we have already mentioned, conveyed to it the stream
from the fountains of the Wady Bil Ghadir; so that there was a
sufficient supply of water available for its irrigation even during the
droughts of summer. It is, moreover, protected by the high hills of
Cyrene from the scorching blast of the _Gibli_—a wind from the desert
that not unfrequently destroys all the vegetation exposed to it. With
its trees and flowers thus perpetually refreshed and protected, it must
have formed one of the most pleasing features in the beautiful landscape
seen from the city and terraces above.
Besides the Wady Bil Ghadir, two other ravines in the immediate
neighbourhood of Cyrene are remarkable for the picturesque grandeur of
their scenery, the Wady Mûchgûn to the west, and the Wady Leboaitha to
the east of the city. The former, the widest and deepest Wady in the
range, is filled with fine old olive-trees, many of which are covered in
summer with clusters of honeysuckle.
The upper plateau around Cyrene is destitute of trees. Hardly a shrub is
to be seen in this direction within three or four miles of the city.
Grass, however, grows luxuriantly, so that the surface of the ground,
except during the heat of summer, quite resembles the green sward of old
pasture-land in England.
[Illustration: PLATE 38.—TOMBS ON THE WESTERN SIDE OF WADY BIL GHADIR.]
The comparatively limited scope of the present work not admitting of
further illustration, the reader is referred to the archives of the
British Museum for other interesting details of this Necropolis.
CHAPTER VII.
HAVING fairly established ourselves in our sepulchral residence, and
made every arrangement for our future comfort that the means at our
disposal rendered possible, we began to examine the remains of the city.
Our attention was at first specially directed to the tombs, in which we
hoped to discover small ornaments, vases, terra-cotta figures, and other
_portable_ objects. We were greatly assisted during our first rambles
over the ruins by an Arab of considerable influence in the Cyrenaica,
Mohammed El Adouly. He was a native of Benghazi, but having married the
daughter of one of the Sheikhs of the Haasa tribe, who occupy the
country in the neighbourhood of Cyrene, he kept his flocks, and spent
the greater part of the year, in that district. One of the letters given
us by the Sheikhs assembled at the Consulate was addressed to him, and
Mr. Crowe, with whom he was well acquainted, had also sent him a special
message regarding us. The day after our arrival at Cyrene he paid us a
long visit, bringing with him the welcome present of a camel-load of
milk and butter. He proved our constant friend during the whole time of
our residence in the country, and on many occasions was of great service
to us. Not being entangled in the perpetual feuds of the rival tribes
around us, he was equally respected by all, so that we could hardly have
had a safer friend. He was, besides, a man of much shrewdness and
intelligence, and had profited greatly by his travels in early life. He
had more than once been engaged in slave expeditions to Mourzook and
Soudan, and had visited Constantinople, Alexandria, and Malta. He was
withal a good Mussulman, although he confessed to having in his younger
days been latitudinarian in his conduct, if not in his creed. In person
he was a man of immense size, and had altogether a most imposing
appearance.
[Illustration: PLATE 39.—MOHAMMED EL ADOULY.
_From a Photograph._]
The day immediately after his first visit he returned to show us the
“lions” of the place. After we had seen a few of the tombs in the north-
eastern cemetery, he took us to the hill beyond the Wady Bil Ghadir,
where he showed us an excavated tomb in which a number of objects had
been discovered by M. Bourville. It was a large square chamber cut in
the rock, with the ruins of some kind of building in front: two marble
statues without heads were lying near it.
[Illustration: Pl. 40.
PLAN OF CYRENE
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
As every _open_ tomb had doubtless been rifled long ago, we were
anxious, if possible, to discover some under the surface of the soil, in
the hope that they might still remain intact. In many of those cut in
the scarped sides of the hills we found the fronts partially covered by
the earth washed down from above, and therefore thought it probable that
others existed which had been wholly covered. We accordingly looked for
a place where such tombs were likely to be found, and at last chose, as
the most promising spot, a heap of ruins lying against an artificial
escarp near the tomb opened by M. Bourville.
The following day, the 27th of December, we commenced our excavations at
this place. At first the work went on but slowly, owing to the
inexperience of the blacks, who were quite ignorant of the use of the
tools, which they now handled for the first time in their lives. For
some time, therefore, we had to do the most of the digging ourselves.
Although it may seem a very simple matter to teach an able-bodied man to
use a pickaxe and a shovel, it is a much more tedious process than may
be supposed. As every railway contractor knows, a “navvy” has to serve a
good long apprenticeship before he is fit to take his place in a regular
gang of excavators.
Our great difficulty, however, with the blacks was to make them
understand the use of a crowbar. When a stone was too heavy to lift, or
was so placed that it could not be rolled, their only resource was to
try to break it. It was long before we could get them to see the power
of the lever, and still longer before they could apply it themselves.
After five days’ hard work, in clearing away the ruins of the building
from the face of the escarp, we reached the rock at the bottom, about
twelve feet below the original surface, but without finding an entrance
as we had expected. As it was evident that nothing was to be discovered
here, we left this place on the 1st of January, 1861, and removed to a
rock-tomb in the Wady Bil Ghadir, where the absence of any remains of
buildings made the work much easier. After a day and a half’s digging we
came to a doorway, five or six feet below the surface, closed by a
single slab of stone, of which one of the upper corners was broken away
sufficiently to allow a man to enter. Inside we found a plain square
chamber with recesses, partially filled with the earth that had been
washed in through the doorway. It was impossible to enter the chamber
without breaking the long, thin stalactites which covered the roof and
almost touched the floor. Nothing, however, remained either in the
chamber or the recesses—a result fatal to our hopes of discoveries in
the tombs, as it proved that this one, at least, had been rifled, not
recently, but before it became buried, a sufficient period having
afterwards elapsed to allow the formation of the stalactites. This being
the case, we concluded that other tombs, even if now covered with earth,
had probably shared the same fate.
For this reason we abandoned the tombs, and turned our attention to the
remains of buildings within the walls of the city. After a careful
examination of several places, we chose a prominent site near the
southern gate, marked in the plan “Temple of Bacchus.” In the centre of
a large oblong platform, enclosed by a massive colonnade and a well-
built _peribolus_ wall, the position of the temple itself was marked by
a low mound of earth, with a few blocks of stone and marble showing here
and there above the surface. The exterior of the two side-walls of the
temple had been partially laid bare by a former excavator, M. Bourville,
as the Arabs informed us. Part of the gateway in the southern
_peribolus_ wall is still standing, and is one of the most conspicuous
objects in Cyrene. The ruins of the colonnade, which is of the Doric
order, are nearly all above ground.
We began work at this temple on the afternoon of the 2nd, by digging
along the outside of the western wall. The earth was filled with
fragments of pottery and blocks of stone belonging to the building.
Among the latter were portions of a frieze with triglyphs, a proof that
the temple was of the Doric order. The stone was the same as in almost
all the buildings in Cyrene,—a friable yellow sandstone, containing a
great many fossil shells.
After finishing a trench along the western side, we began to dig inside
the temple at the western end, going gradually eastward. We were soon
rewarded for our labour by the discovery of a very perfect marble statue
of life size. The head and both hands were gone, but otherwise the
figure was uninjured, the surface being almost without a scratch. It was
lying on the floor of the temple near the north-western corner, about
four or five feet underground. Two days afterwards the figure was all
but completed by the discovery of the head and left hand, near the same
place. The head, that of a youth, wreathed with grapes and vine-leaves,
and the hand holding a cluster of grapes, at once identified the statue,
as one of Bacchus. The drapery falling from the left shoulder across the
right knee left the greater part of the figure nude. This statue is
given in Plate 61. The first thing to be thought of was its immediate
removal to a place of safety, as the Arabs, in their hatred of images,
would have considered its destruction a very meritorious act. But how to
transport it without tackle or other mechanical appliances was rather
puzzling. Meantime we pitched a tent close by, in which the blacks were
stationed to act as a guard, while we made preparations for the work of
removal. Carrying it was out of the question, owing to its great size
and weight; and no vehicle, however rude, existed in the country. Having
finally fixed on a sledge as the only means available, we went to a wood
on the side of the hill beyond the north-eastern cemetery to look for a
tree that would answer the purpose. We selected a good large cedar,
which we felled, after a hard day’s work, with small hatchets, our only
felling-axe having been lost or stolen during the journey from Benghazi.
We then trimmed the trunk and lower branches into a very serviceable
sort of sledge, the under side being cut as smooth as possible, and
grooves made in it for the lashings. We also cut some spars to use as
levers. With these and the coil of small rope we had brought from Malta
we set to work the following day. By placing slings under the shoulders
of the statue, and heaving on them with the spars, we got the figure
into an upright position. The sledge, well covered with mats, was then
lashed firmly to its back, care being taken to have the lashings well
padded, to prevent their chafing the surface of the marble. The sledge,
with the statue attached, was then gradually lowered by means of the
spars, and a drag-rope made fast to it. By dint of hauling and shouting
we got about halfway to our tomb before dark, when we again pitched the
tent and set the guard for the night. Next day we tried the experiment
of yoking in a camel, which proved quite successful. In the course of
the forenoon the statue was safely deposited in our kitchen, where it
was afterwards covered with a tent and walled up. We were not sorry when
our labour was over, as, notwithstanding every contrivance for saving
our hands, they had got sadly torn and blistered.
We completed the excavation of the temple in nineteen days. Besides the
Bacchus, we found two small marble statuettes, and a leopard in stone,
rather smaller than life, with a collar of vine-leaves, but saw no
inscriptions. The temple, very small in size, had no _pteron_, and
consisted only of a _cella_ and _pronaos_, or _portico_. The front,
which was towards the east, contained four columns, the two outer of
which were engaged in the lateral walls. At the western end of the
_cella_ there was a built pedestal, about two feet in height, on which
without doubt the statue stood. The whole of the interior bore traces of
having been faced and paved with thin slabs of marble.
On the 21st of January we removed to the place marked on the plan of the
city immediately above the theatre, on the side of the road leading up
the centre ravine. There were several broken statues lying on the
surface, and another was uncovered in the course of our excavations, but
as they were all of late date and inferior style, we did not think them
worth the trouble of removal. We also came on the bases of some unfluted
marble columns _in situ_, but were unable to follow up the line thus
pointed out, owing to the surrounding ground being sown with barley.
While digging at this place, we turned up a great many thick, square,
flat tiles, with which we paved part of the floor of our tomb.
[Illustration: Pl. 41.
PLAN OF CYRENE To shew the positions from which the plans and Sketches
were made
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
On the 31st of the month we commenced the excavation of the building in
front of the fountain, marked on the plan “Temple of Apollo.” Although
the form of the building could be easily traced, very little of it
remained above ground. We began by clearing out, down to the level of
the pavement, the space between the columns and the wall of the _cella_
along the western and northern sides, on both of which we found parts of
the columns _in situ_ and fragments of the entablature, all of the Doric
order. The stone was the same as that of the Temple of Bacchus. The
building is particularly mentioned by Beechey, who supposed it to be the
Temple of Diana. We were inclined, however, from the first to consider
it the Temple of Apollo, on account of its commanding position
immediately in front of the fountain; and our opinion was confirmed
before we commenced its excavation, by finding two inscriptions among
the ruins, both of which referred to that deity.
Our space for digging was very limited, all the surrounding ground, and
even the eastern half of the temple itself, being covered with crops of
grain. We would, willingly have bought them up, but found it impossible
to do so, owing to the strong religious feeling of the Arabs, who regard
the fruits of the soil as the immediate gift of God, and would resent
their destruction as an act of sacrilege. The soil, once it has received
the seed, becomes sacred, and can no more be desecrated by the excavator
than a Greek church or a Turkish burial-ground.
After digging along the west and north sides as far as we could for the
crops, we commenced inside the _cella_, at the north-west corner.
Cramped as we were for want of space, we were obliged to throw the
_deblai_, as we proceeded, into the trench we had already excavated
outside. The first object we found was a small draped female statue,
unbroken, about 3 feet 6 inches in height. A few days afterwards we
discovered a colossal statue of Apollo himself, lying on the floor of
the temple, about ten feet below the surface of the ground. The head was
broken off, and the body in three pieces; but as the fractures were
clean and sharp, and their edges unchipped, we hoped that the whole
figure might afterwards be put together without difficulty. When this
was actually done, after the arrival of the sculptures in England, the
parts were all found to fit each other so accurately that the fractures
were barely perceptible. The trunk of the tree, the lyre, the serpent,
the bow and quiver, and some of the folds of the drapery, were found
piecemeal, in a great many fragments, which we collected carefully. The
statue, as it now stands, without the slightest restoration, in the
British Museum, is built up of no less than 121 separate pieces. A
Photograph of it is given in Plate 62. Near it was a large square
pedestal on which it had once stood.
Its removal to our tomb proved a most tedious and difficult operation,
on account not only of the great weight of each of the three parts, and
the depth at which they were discovered, but also of the very tender way
in which they had to be handled to prevent the thin sharp edges of the
fractures from being chipped and bruised. Our troubles were increased by
the conduct of the blacks, who thought this a favourable opportunity for
advancing the most extravagant claims for remuneration. Some ridiculous
notions had been put into their heads by the Arabs, during our absence
for a few days at Derna. All our appeals and offers of a compromise were
rejected; and as we would not yield to their absurd pretensions, they
went off, and left us to get the Apollo to our tomb without them. As
this was impossible, we were reduced to the necessity of reburying the
statue to protect it from the Arabs. Our good fortune, however, had not
deserted us. Two days afterwards, three negroes, sent by Mr. Crowe,
arrived from Benghazi, and we were enabled to resume work. With their
assistance and that of some of our Arab friends, we deposited the Apollo
in safety in our tomb, after several days’ very hard work. The sledge
was used as before, and a camel yoked in to help us to drag it. On the
former occasion, when the road was pretty smooth, and for the most part
down-hill, the camel did very well; now, however, the road was rough and
all up-hill, and as the camel, although an excellent beast of burden,
was quite unaccustomed to pulling, he would do nothing when he found he
could not walk away with the load easily. We had, consequently, to
unyoke him, and drag the sledge, foot by foot, ourselves.
Our new labourers, with whom the work of instruction had, of course, to
be recommenced, remained till the 20th of April, when they had to leave
us for harvest-work at Benghazi. We then tried some Arabs, but were soon
glad to get rid of them, as they gave us a great deal of trouble and did
very little work. By this time, however, we had completed the excavation
of the temple, nearly as far as our space allowed. We accordingly
proposed to spend a few weeks in making excursions to different parts of
the country, and to resume operations at Cyrene after the end of the
harvest.
It was evident from the first that many of the ruins at the Temple of
Apollo were of much later date than the building itself. The _Cella_ was
full of rubble walls and arches, roughly built of the materials of the
more ancient building; and the eastern half was paved with coarse
mosaic, about nine feet above the original floor of the temple, and,
consequently, only two or three below the surface of the ground. Under
this pavement there was a horizontal layer of broken columns resting on
others which stood in rows on the floor of the temple.
Near the middle of the _Cella_, a draped male statue, about seven feet
in height, but broken in two, was found lying on the tesselated pavement
(Plate 63). The head, which was of a separate piece from the body, from
which it could be removed at pleasure, fitted into a socket,—a somewhat
barbarous expedient for making the statue of a deceased emperor do duty
as his living successor’s, after the simple change of the head and the
name. Close to the statue we found a broken marble pedestal, on which
the following fragment of an inscription could be deciphered.
αὐτ]οκράτορα [Καίσ]αρ[α
Τρ]αϊανὸν Ἀ[δριαν]ὸν
Σε]βασ[τόν.
It may be presumed from this inscription that the statue represents the
Emperor Hadrian. We also found on this spot a large marble slab, on
which was the inscription, No. 26. We removed it to our tomb, like the
others, by means of the sledge. Imbedded in the earth, between the feet
of the statue, we found a head of Minerva, rather smaller than life,
quite uninjured, with the single exception of the point of the helmet,
which was a little broken. (_See_ Plate 64.)
In the same part of the temple as the Apollo, that is, in the western
half of the _Cella_, we found a head life-size, identified by an
inscription as the portrait of Cnæus Cornelius Lentulus Marcellinus, the
first Roman proprætor of Cyrene. (_See_ Plate 65.) The inscription (No.
1) was cut on the face of a square block of marble, on which stood a
square pedestal, 10 inches broad and 5 feet high, having at the top a
deep socket, into which the head was fitted. The back of the head was
cut flat, as if it had rested against a wall.
As our workmen had all left, we were unable at this time to complete the
excavation of the interior of the _Cella_. The whole of the eastern
half, between the mosaic pavement and the floor, we had to leave
untouched, until the month of August. One of the most remarkable things
which we then discovered was a bronze portrait head, in an excellent
state of preservation (Plate 66), lying on the original floor of the
temple, 11 feet beneath the mosaic pavement. Near it were some small
bronze fragments of horses, &c., very much injured, as if by fire;
several terra-cotta lamps, and a quantity of fragments of gold-leaf
mixed up with the earth. We also discovered several marble heads of
different sizes, a number of inscriptions, eight small statues, varying
from 2½ to 4 feet in height, and part of a leg of a colossal statue of
very fine style. Of the small statues the most remarkable were a figure
of Jupiter Ammon, a group representing the nymph Cyrene strangling a
lion, and a huntress, probably Diana Venatrix, accompanied by a dog.
The temple was of the usual form and construction, although it might be
remarked that its length was somewhat great in proportion to its
breadth, and that the entrance was not in the west but in the east
front. In these two respects, however, we found all the temples of
Cyrene which we examined, alike. The entrance being in this position,
the statue of the deity must have been placed at the west end facing the
east, contrary to the following recommendation of Vitruvius: “The
temples of the gods should be so placed that the statue, which has its
station in the _Cella_, should, if there be nothing to interfere with
such a disposition, face the west, in order that those who come to make
oblations and offer sacrifices, may face the east when their view is
directed toward the statue; and those who come to impose upon themselves
the performance of vows, may have the temple and the east immediately
before them. Thus the statue they regard will appear as if rising from
the east and looking down on the suppliants.”[3]
CHAPTER VIII.
WHEN our workmen left us, and the excavations were stopped in the end of
April, we had a considerable collection of valuable sculptures in our
tomb, but were still uncertain whether we should be furnished by the
Government with the means of sending them home. To determine the best
method of conveying them to the shore, should the means of doing so be
granted, we had carefully examined the country between Cyrene and the
coast. The greatest difficulty to be overcome was the descent of the
Augubah, or lower range of precipitous hills near the sea, to which our
attention was, therefore, specially directed. We soon found, however,
that little or no choice was left us, the only practicable pass near
Cyrene being on the track of the ancient road to Apollonia, now called
Marsa Sousah. It was evident that the transport of the statues over such
a road would be a work of great labour and considerable difficulty; but,
at the same time, we thought it quite a feasible undertaking. We
accordingly sent a report of our proceedings to Lord Russell as early as
the month of February, soon after the discovery of the Bacchus, and
enclosed a detail of the means we considered best adapted for the
carriage of that statue and such others as might afterwards be found.
His lordship readily granted the required means, and, at his request, a
man-of-war, with all the stores and appliances we had suggested, was
ordered to proceed to Marsa Sousah to embark the sculptures. Owing,
however, to the want of communication with Europe, we did not receive
the reply to our report until after the actual arrival of the vessel in
the month of May. About the same time a letter reached us from Mr.
Panizzi, principal Librarian of the British Museum, informing us that
the Trustees had voted us a subsidy of £100 towards defraying the
expenses of the expedition.
H.M.S. _Assurance_, Commander C. M. Aynsley, arrived off Marsa Sousah on
the 10th of May, but finding a strong breeze blowing towards the shore
from the north-west, she steamed on about fifteen miles to the eastward,
and anchored in a more sheltered position behind Ras El Hilal. As the
fact of our being at Cyrene was by this time well known throughout the
country, the officers of the _Assurance_ had no difficulty in finding an
Arab to whom they could make themselves understood, and who was
forthwith despatched with a letter to inform us of their arrival. After
walking all night he reached our quarters early in the morning. As we
had hitherto received no letters from England, we were most agreeably
surprised by the good news he brought us, and gave him an unusually
liberal backshish in consequence. Independently of the encouragement and
assistance given us by the arrival of the vessel, we were, of course,
delighted with the prospect of seeing some of our own friends and
countrymen after our solitary residence of five months among negroes and
Bedouins. We immediately saddled our horses and started for Ras El Hilal
without delay, accompanied by the Arab who brought the letter, and by
our friend Amor Bon Abdi Seyat and his brother. Great part of the road
along the shore from Marsa Sousah was over sharp rocks and across deep
rugged wadys, so that it was with difficulty that we reached Ras El
Hilal after an eight hours’ ride. We there found some of the officers on
shore shooting, with whom we went on board for the night, leaving our
horses in charge of Amor and his brother.
Ras El Hilal, behind which the _Assurance_ was anchored, is the site of
the ancient Naustathmus, of which almost no remains are now to be seen.
The following morning, May 12th, the wind having moderated, the vessel
steamed round to Marsa Sousah, and anchored about half a mile from the
shore. A party of thirty blue jackets and marines, who were all that
could be spared from the ship, were immediately landed, under the
command of Lieutenant Luard, R.N., and encamped on the beach. The
waggons and stores of all sorts were then disembarked, and two ship’s
carpenters sent to Cyrene to make packing-cases for the marbles. Amor
and his friends meanwhile scoured the country in all directions to get
camels to carry the plank and stores up to Cyrene, but had considerable
difficulty in finding a sufficient number, as the Arabs were all at work
getting in their harvest. After two days’ delay we at last got about a
dozen collected at the camp on the beach. Besides those required for the
carriage of the planks and stores to Cyrene, a number of camels were
wanted to accompany the working party with the waggons to carry the
sailors’ tents and baggage, and keep them supplied with water. An
arrangement was accordingly made with the drivers, by which we agreed to
pay a certain sum _per trip_ for each camel carrying a load to Cyrene,
and a certain sum _per diem_ for each camel that remained with the
waggon party. The tents and baggage were consequently placed in one
heap, and the stores for Cyrene in another, the drivers being allowed to
distribute the work among themselves as they pleased. The usual tiresome
wrangling over the division of the loads ensued, as a matter of course,
and on this occasion it lasted all day. Towards evening the different
burdens were at last adjusted, and the camels loaded. We congratulated
ourselves that we were now on the point of effecting a start, when the
owners of the camels that were loaded with the sailors’ baggage changed
their minds, and said they would either go up to Cyrene or not go at
all. Argument and expostulation were in vain; they coolly unloaded the
camels and took their departure. We were accordingly obliged to pitch
our tents again for the night, and remain where we were as patiently as
possible.
Next day we fortunately met our friend Mohammed El Adouly, who undertook
to supply us with a sufficient number of camels, and to superintend the
drivers himself. We were thus saved a great deal of trouble and delay,
as he carried out his contract to our entire satisfaction.
We started from Marsa Sousah with the two waggons on the 14th, and
reached the foot of the Augubah the same night. Next morning we dragged
the waggons one at a time up the slope of the hill, until further
progress became impossible. The only way of getting them to the top was
by unscrewing all the connecting bolts, and carrying the separate pieces
on the men’s shoulders. Owing to the steepness of the narrow rocky path,
and the weight of the wheels and many of the other pieces, this was a
work of great labour; but the sailors had made up their minds that it
must be done, and they did it accordingly. It was only after three days’
incessant toil that they got everything to the top, when the waggons
were again put together, and the journey resumed in the usual way. Our
progress, however, was slow; as, throughout a great part of the way, a
road had to be cleared and made before it was possible to get the
waggons dragged along. Except at one or two places, the party was barely
strong enough to drag one waggon at a time, although our numbers were by
this time increased by the arrival of seven blacks from Benghazi.
Our usual method of proceeding was as follows:—We got up at daybreak,
had breakfast, and started with the waggons before sunrise. We remained
at work till eight or nine o’clock, when the party returned to the camp
and rested till about three in the afternoon, when the tents were struck
and packed with the baggage on the camels. From the distance traversed
in the morning, it was easy to foresee what point would be reached
before night. A convenient place for encampment was therefore chosen
after the morning’s work, and two or three men were sent on with the
baggage in the afternoon, to pitch the tents and cook the men’s supper,
before their arrival with the waggons at sunset. The men worked most
cheerfully, and seemed quite to enjoy the change from shipboard. After
supper, their great amusement was to build large bonfires all round the
camp, for the purpose, as they said, of keeping off the wild beasts.
Even after their hard day’s work, they used to sit round the fires
telling stories and singing songs till far into the night, much to the
wonder of the Arabs and negroes who were in the camp.
Meantime the carpenters had packed the statues, so that on our arrival
at Cyrene on the 24th, the loads for the waggons were ready. On one
waggon we placed the Bacchus and the largest of the small statues, and
on the other the Apollo in three cases. The smaller objects, such as
heads, statuettes, &c., were packed in small boxes to be carried by
camels. We were obliged to leave three of the largest of the small
figures, and also the statue of Hadrian, as there was no room for them
in the waggons, and they were too heavy for the camels.
We started from Cyrene on the morning of the 29th, and, taking only one
waggon at a time, reached the plain at the base of the hills the same
night. The five following days were spent in crossing the lower plateau
to the top of the Augubah, where we arrived on the 3rd of June. The
wheels of the waggons were by this time considerably shaken by the heavy
jolting over rocks and stones, but still remained unbroken.
We had now to face our chief difficulty, the descent of the Augubah.
After considering every possible way in which it could be done, we
decided on lowering the waggons straight down the face of the hill by
means of tackle. The least rugged part of the hill being selected, our
first care was to provide the means of making fast the lowering tackle,
which was done by placing heavy boat’s anchors in holes cut for the
purpose in the rock. The front axle of the waggon was then lashed to the
body of the carriage to prevent the fore wheels from getting locked
against the sides of the waggon, and thereby upsetting it. A tackle,
consisting of a 3½-inch rope, rove through two double blocks, was then
made fast to the anchors, and to the centre of the fore axle, and the
waggon lowered slowly, hind wheels foremost. About one-third of the way
down, there was a nearly level ledge or terrace, forming part of the
ancient road to Apollonia, which served as a convenient halting-place
from which to make a fresh start. To reach this point, however, the
waggons, as they were being lowered, had to be guided in a slanting
direction across the face of the hill, which was safely done with the
first waggon by means of handspikes. Not content to “let well alone,” we
unfortunately thought to improve upon this simple method in the lowering
of the other one. In addition to the anchors already in position,
another was placed some distance to the right, and directly above the
part of the terrace to which the waggons had to be taken. After the
waggon had been lowered to a convenient place, the standing part of the
tackle was to be transferred from the first anchor to the second one,
thereby causing the waggon, when the lowering was continued, to slant
across to the right until it was directly under the second anchor, to
which the whole tackle was then to be transferred, and the waggon
lowered straight down to the halting-place on the terrace. It was, in
fact, an application of the principle of the _whip_ used for taking
weights over a ship’s side. Unfortunately, the second anchor was not
properly placed in the hole made for it. The petty officer sent to look
after it, instead of letting it remain as we had left it, thought he had
improved its hold by placing it horizontally in a cleft of the rock, so
as to act not as an _anchor_, but as what is called a _toggle_. The
result was, that whenever it felt the indirect strain of the slanting
motion of the waggon, it at once tilted up and lost its hold. To our
horror, away went the waggon at a tremendous pace, and the anchor after
it almost flying. For a second or two the destruction of the waggon and
the Apollo seemed inevitable, as it was heading straight for a precipice
two or three hundred feet in height, when, to our relief, it gave a
great bound, and landed itself in a large cavity in the rock. Strange to
say, not even a spoke of a wheel was broken. With considerable
difficulty we got it out of its lodgment, and along the terrace to the
part selected as the starting-point for the further lowering to the
bottom of the hill. Here the face of the hill presented a continuous
slope, about 400 yards in length, and so steep that it was impossible to
climb it at some parts, except on hands and feet. All the ropes the ship
could afford were spliced to make a tackle of sufficient length. The
anchors were again placed in holes cut in the rock, and the fore axles
of the waggons lashed as before. The great danger to be avoided was the
_serging_ of the waggon, caused by the elasticity of such a length of
tackle. To prevent this, a few men with handspikes went with the waggon
to keep it moving as uniformly as the nature of the ground would admit.
Both waggons reached the bottom without accident, and were saluted on
their arrival there by three hearty cheers from the whole party.
The following day the _Assurance_ anchored abreast of the Augubah, and
the waggons were dragged to the beach, where a triangle was set up in
water deep enough for a loaded boat. The waggons were then run under it,
and the cases, one by one, weighed and lowered into the ship’s boats. On
the same day, Mohammed El Adouly’s camels brought down the last of the
smaller cases; so that before night everything was on board.
For the success of all the operations connected with the transport and
embarkation of the statues we were greatly indebted to Captain Aynsley,
the officers, and crew of the _Assurance_, and particularly to
Lieutenant Luard and the working party under his command. He was himself
indefatigable in his exertions to get the work carried on, and his
orders were most cheerfully obeyed by the men, whose “pluck” and
determination overcame every obstacle.
Early the following morning, the 8th of June, the _Assurance_ left for
Malta, and we returned to our solitary residence at Cyrene.
CHAPTER IX.
BEFORE resuming the narrative of our excavations, we may here give some
account of our dealings with the Arabs, and of the excursions which we
made to different parts of the Cyrenaica before the arrival of the
_Assurance_.
Not long after our arrival at Cyrene we had a specimen of the kind of
difficulties we were likely to meet with not unfrequently. Walking one
day round the face of the hill opposite the fountain, we were met by an
Arab who, in very expressive language, ordered us to turn and leave the
place at once. For some time we could not exactly make out what had so
stirred up his indignation, but afterwards found that it was our
presence within the limits of the _Zauyah_. Thinking the Zauyah was
probably one of the tombs converted into a mosque, we told him we had no
wish to desecrate it, and asked him to show us where it was, that we
might avoid it in future. To our astonishment, the boundary he pointed
out included the whole side of a hill, which formed one of the most
interesting parts of the north-eastern cemetery. To give up the right of
visiting so large a portion of the necropolis was out of the question,
especially as submission on our part would only encourage the _Achwan_,
or devotees of the Zauyah, to further acts of aggression. We therefore
determined to contest the point, which we did by walking within the
proscribed boundary nearly every day. Several threatening messages
reached us from the Sheikh of the Zauyah, who, professing himself our
friend, said he could not control the rage of the Arabs if we continued
to pollute the sacred enclosure by our presence. This Sheikh, Mustapha
by name, was considered one of the greatest saints in the country, and
was respected and feared accordingly. He was always called _Sidi_
Mustapha, a title bestowed upon Marabouts, or holy men, and equivalent
to _Rabbi_—my lord or master. Originally one of the greatest thieves in
Mesurata, he had suddenly become intensely religious, and joined the
fanatical sect of _El Senoussy_ during the late revival of Mussulman
bigotry. He, with others, had left Mesurata, and travelled about the
country trying to stir up a crusade against the Christians. He was now
settled down as the Sheikh of the Zauyah of Shahat.
Matters continued in this unsatisfactory state for nearly a month, till
one day, when we were walking along the forbidden path, an Arab sallied
forth from a tomb above us and began pelting us with stones. He was
immediately joined by others from different directions, all in the
highest state of excitement. Some of the more indignant were for
shooting us at once, and one man had actually levelled his gun, but was
prevented from firing by some of his cooler friends. Meantime such a
number of Arabs had assembled that it would have been foolishness for us
to attempt going farther. Sidi Mustapha, by whom the whole thing had
evidently been planned, now appeared on the scene, and pretended to try
and pacify the enraged crowd. After several unsuccessful efforts,
turning to us, he said, “You see it is just as I told you; and if this
goes on, I shall not be able to prevent their shooting you, if you
remain at Cyrene at all.” We had, of course, to retire, but told his
lordship that we had come to Cyrene for a special purpose, and had no
intention of leaving until that was accomplished. Moreover, that we
would see that the two men who had thrown stones and threatened to shoot
us were duly punished for their offence.
Shortly before this time a tent and some other articles had been stolen
from our tomb, and although the Arabs must have known well enough who
the thieves were, we could find no trace of our lost property. We
therefore determined to test the value of our firman, by requesting the
Mudir of Ghegheb to punish the two Achwani of the Zauyah, and to compel
the tribe near Cyrene to deliver up the thief, our object in doing so
being, if possible, to show the Arabs that we were not to be offended
with impunity. Porcher and Cesareo accordingly went the day after the
disturbance to the castle of Ghegheb, were they saw the Mudir, Lemin Ben
Sitewi, an old Arab, who had been Mudir under the Karamanlis before the
occupation of the country by the Turks. When he saw the firman, and was
informed of the object of the visit, he promised that everything should
be done at once to our satisfaction. The two Achwani should be
apprehended and kept in prison at Ghegheb until he had communicated with
the Pacha at Benghazi, and our lost property should either be
immediately restored, or the tribe mulcted of its value, which was
estimated at 3,000 piastres (£24). He said he had no doubt that the
thief, and probably one of the principal intriguers against us, was a
neighbour of our own, Mabrook Jerébi, who was, therefore, to be
immediately apprehended.
So far as promises went, all this was satisfactory enough; but
performance, as usual, was quite the reverse. In conducting business of
any kind with officials in Turkey, there is never the slightest
difficulty in making the preliminary arrangements and stipulations.
During an interview everything is settled exactly as you wish, and you
come away impressed with the idea that you have managed your business
very cleverly, and that the authorities in Turkey are, after all, not
half so bad as they are called. You soon discover, however, that here
your real difficulties begin. If what is promised is ever actually
performed, it is only after the most vexatious shuffling and delay, for
which plausible excuses are never wanting. A Turkish official seems to
reason with himself somewhat in this way:—“I do not wish to disturb my
peace of mind by arguing with this man; I must, therefore, promise
everything he wishes, reserving the question of performance for private
consideration afterwards. Should he afterwards be so exacting as to
insist on the fulfilment of my promises, I am quite unfit for my post if
I cannot coin sufficient excuses to satisfy him. A judicious repetition
of the promises, and the partial performance now and then of some of
them, will keep matters all right for a time, and, meanwhile, ‘something
may turn up.’ Should the worst come to the worst, I shall, after all,
have to do no more than I promised at the first.”
Such is the almost invariable method of conducting business; so that, in
proportion as a man becomes an adept in the art of delay, his reputation
as a clever administrator increases. The Turks, and I believe Easterns
in general, pride themselves on their superiority to Europeans in this
kind of sharpness. Hence a common saying among them, “Frangestan
marafat, lakin Arabestan akl,” “Europe for talent, _but_ the East for
cleverness,” the force of the word _lakin_ showing the higher esteem in
which the _akl_ is held. We are, perhaps, too apt in this country to
sacrifice the _suaviter in modo_ to the _fortiter in re_, but in Turkey
the tendency is quite the reverse.
The above was thoroughly exemplified in our dealings with Lemin Ben
Sitewi. The day after Porcher’s interview, Lemin’s Kiayah, or Secretary,
with a number of mounted Koralié, came to Cyrene for the ostensible
purpose of carrying out the orders for the apprehension of the
offenders. They took Mabrook Jerébi, whom we had never accused, but said
they could not get the two Achwani as they did not know their names.
When we gave them the names, they went again to the Zauyah, but returned
immediately, saying the men were gone away and could not be found. On
our saying that this was not the case, as we had seen them only a few
hours before, they said that the fact was that both the men were the
servants of Sidi Mustapha and could not be taken without his consent,
which it was impossible to obtain that day, as he was from home. On his
return, however, which was expected the following day, they would come
again to Shahat and apprehend the men without fail. Seeing the way in
which the matter was likely to end if left in the hands of the Mudir, we
told the Kiayah to inform his master that if the men were not taken
within three days, we would communicate the whole of the affair through
the Consul to the Pacha at Benghazi.
After waiting some days, and hearing no further tidings of the actions
of the Mudir, we sent a courier to Benghazi with a letter to Mr. Crowe,
in which we gave a full account of the matters as they stood, and
requested him to take whatever steps he thought advisable. He at once
called on the Kaimacam and insisted on his sending the most stringent
orders to the Mudir to have the men apprehended and sent to Benghazi. A
messenger was accordingly sent to Ghegheb with orders to the Mudir to go
himself to Cyrene without delay and seize the men. After bringing them
before us for identification, he was to send them to Benghazi to be
dealt with by the Kaimacam himself. He was also to pay us the 3,000
piastres and levy the amount on the tribe guilty of the theft.
In consequence of these orders, Lemin made his appearance at our
quarters one morning accompanied by a large retinue of Sheiks,
Chavasses, and Koralié. After informing us of the object of his visit,
he handed over to us 1,500 piastres, alleging the emptiness of the
public chest as his reason for not bringing the whole sum. He also said
that the two men had been sent for and would be brought before us in the
course of an hour or two. Expecting further difficulties and excuses, we
were certainly somewhat surprised by the actual arrival of the
prisoners, who, however, seemed unaccountably cool and unconcerned. This
the Mudir explained by whispering to us that they were not aware of the
object for which he had called them, but had come with the idea that
they were only to make an apology for their conduct and depart in peace.
He even received them with a gracious “Salaam Aleikoum,” and bade them
be seated. After a short pause he turned to us and asked if these were
the men of whom we complained. When we said that they were, he called
out “Bring the ropes.” The Chavasses immediately ran in and with a great
pretence of activity and violence disarmed and pinioned the prisoners.
They were then led off ignominiously by the mounted attendants, who, to
make escape impossible, held them by long ropes attached to their
pinions. They were followed by the Mudir and his retinue, the whole
cavalcade moving off in the presence of a large concourse of Arabs who
had meantime assembled round our tomb. The whole scene was quite
dramatic.
We soon discovered that the drama had been rehearsed with a view to its
effect, not on the assembled Arabs, but on ourselves. Within a week we
heard that the prisoners were again at liberty, having, according to the
Mudir, slipped their shackles in a miraculous manner, and escaped during
the night when on their way to Benghazi. This feat, however, lost all
its supernatural character in our eyes, when looked upon in connection
with the purse of dollars previously subscribed by the Arabs and given
to the Mudir. His superior cleverness on this occasion cost him dear,
for on our again applying to Mr. Crowe, he was deprived of office and
sent as a prisoner to Tripoli, whence he was not allowed to return to
Benghazi until all his money had found its way into the coffers of the
Pacha. Thus after two months’ delay, our dignity was finally and
publicly vindicated.
About the same time the Kaimacam sent his Bash-Chavass, or head
policeman, Osman Aga, to Cyrene, to remain with us as long as we thought
his presence desirable, and to keep a good look-out on the doings of the
Achwani of the Zauyah. Long before his arrival, however, Sidi Mustapha,
seeing the turn affairs were taking, went off to Augila, and did not
return until he heard of the coming of the _Assurance_, in which he
thought we would take our departure. Although the Achwani committed no
open act of hostility towards us, they caused us a great deal of trouble
indirectly, by interfering with our servants. Our principal servant,
Amor Bon Abdi Seyat, was bound to us by too secure a tenure to be much
affected by their opinions, as he not only received liberal and frequent
bakshish, but was, with his whole family, exempted from the payment of
the _miri_, or tribute, so long as he remained in our employment. Some
of the other servants, however, the Achwani threatened with their
vengeance if they remained longer in our service. They were particularly
bitter against an old woman, Fatima, who ground the corn and made the
bread of the establishment. Her services were absolutely indispensable,
inasmuch as an Arab, or even a negro, would rather eat raw corn or
starve than grind the wheat or barley himself. Of all employments, this
of grinding corn is peculiarly a woman’s, and is never done even by
boys. On the other hand, the sewing and washing of both men’s and
women’s clothes are done by the men. Fatima’s office of Nufaga being,
therefore one of the most important in our household, the Achwani made
special efforts to deprive us of her services, telling her that they
would cut her hands off after we were gone if she remained another day
with us. They even went beyond threats, for one day when she was at the
Zauyah for something or other, they got hold of her and gave her a
beating. As this was a more tangible offence than mere threats, we put
in force against them a law of retaliation recognized by the Arabs, by
which they were compelled to pay old Fatima the sum of twenty-five
dollars.
With these exceptions our intercourse with the Arabs was usually of a
friendly nature. During the first two months of our stay at Cyrene, we
were greatly indebted to Mr. Cesareo, whose knowledge of the language
and acquaintance with the habits of the people were of the greatest
service. He left us to return to Benghazi, in the beginning of March,
after which time we had to transact our business with the Arabs in the
best way we could without assistance. Our transactions consisted chiefly
in making bargains for barley, wheat, butter, sheep, and bullocks.
Concluding a bargain was always a very tedious affair, and seeing it
properly carried out afterwards was much more so. One great cause of
this was the absence of any definite standard of measurement; the only
measure of capacity for both solids and liquids being the _wugga_, or
oke, which, however, was little more than a name, the wugga of one Arab
being sometimes half as much again as that of another. This, of course,
caused endless disputes; and as we found the oke daily becoming “small
by degrees and beautifully less,” we were obliged at last to adopt an
arbitrary wugga of our own. When this, after long opposition, was fairly
established, we were saved a great part of the previous trouble and
annoyance.
The public disgrace of the Mudir had a very salutary effect on the
Arabs, and was, no doubt, one of the principal causes of their general
good behaviour toward us afterwards. Another was that they had gradually
become accustomed to our presence, and were less hostile in proportion
as we became better acquainted with each other. The tribes we met in
other parts of the country, and those from the southward, who came to
the neighbourhood of Cyrene late in the summer, took no pains to hide
their great hatred of the Nazarenes. The following is an instance of
this feeling. Some Arabs who were assembled in our tomb, were talking
about a report that had reached us of a violent earthquake in Malta and
Sicily, by which many thousand people had perished. One of the Arabs
present, on being told, in answer to a question, that all these people
were Christians, muttered in a low, expressive tone: “_El Hamdu
’lillah!_” (Praise be to God!)
We gained considerable influence by our reputed skill as doctors,
although we disclaimed any pretensions to a knowledge of the healing
art. People came with diseases of every kind, in the expectation that
they were at once to be cured. Knowing nothing of the nature or causes
of disease, they look upon it as a supernatural visitation, and
therefore conclude that it is only to be abated or cured by supernatural
means, of which medicine and written charms (_kiteeba_) are the most
effectual. The latter, being altogether mysterious, are held in the
highest esteem. Owing to the ignorance of the people, the few among them
who can read and write are looked upon with a respect somewhat allied to
fear; and if, in addition to the accomplishments of reading and writing,
a man has the reputation of being a marabut, or saint, he is treated
with the greatest reverence. Such men are called _fikkis_, and not
unusually turn their reputation to good account by selling written
charms to their credulous clients. As we were often seen reading and
writing, the Arabs became fully convinced that we must be great fikkis,
although, as Christians, we could not have derived our power from the
proper quarter. Applications for kiteebas were, therefore, very
frequent, not only in cases of sickness, but also for the remedy of all
sorts of domestic troubles and grievances. A woman, for instance, came
for a kiteeba to enable her to retain the undivided affections of her
husband, and thereby restrain him from taking another wife. A man whose
hopes of marrying the object of his affections had been frustrated by
the enmity of her relations, wanted one to overcome their opposition and
secure the success of his suit. One young lady begged for a kiteeba that
would get her a husband, and another asked for one to prevent her being
married to a man she disliked. In vain we tried to persuade the people
that charms were valueless, and that the idea of their efficacy was kept
up by the fikkis solely for their own advantage. The belief in their
power was too deeply rooted to be shaken by anything we could say, and
our unwillingness to write them was attributed to mere churlishness.
This being the case, we were often obliged to act as sorcerers to get
rid of importunate applicants. In giving a kiteeba, we took care at the
same time to recommend the use of such natural means as we thought most
conducive to the desired result, and enforced our advice by saying, that
the kiteeba was so written that it could have no effect if the means
recommended were not adopted. If the desired result was obtained, the
success was, of course, ascribed to the virtue of the charm; and if not,
the failure was attributed to a final cause,—it was _mektub_, written as
the will of God in the Book of Fate.
The wandering habits of the Bedouins are a necessary result of the form
of their property and of the physical condition of the country in which
they live. As the various tribes are in a perpetual state of feud or
open war among themselves, agriculture is but little attended to, and
property consists almost entirely of flocks and herds, which, being
moveable, are better adapted than crops to a lawless state of society.
For mutual protection, a number of families belonging to the same clan
or subdivision of a tribe live together and form an encampment, which
consists generally of from six to twelve tents, with one family in each.
The flocks belonging to the camp graze on the surrounding pastures, and,
during summer, drink the water that remains in the pools which form
during the rains in winter. In a short time the grass and water within a
convenient distance of the camp are consumed, and it becomes necessary
to move to another place. The tents are then struck, and, with the
smaller children and the few rude articles that belong to the household,
are carried by camels and oxen; the men mount their horses, and the
women follow on foot to drive the flocks.
In fixing on a spot for a camp, two points have to be attended to; good
grazing-ground for the animals, and a sheltered and secluded position
for the tents. On this account a thicket of brushwood is frequently
selected, in the centre of which a space is cleared for the camp, and
enclosed by a rough fence of shrubs and branches, which keeps in the
cattle during the night, and serves to a great extent as a line of
defence, as it is impossible to pass it without attracting the attention
of the numerous watch-dogs on duty inside.
These dogs bark all night without intermission, and give warning of the
approach of a stranger by a special howl of peculiar fierceness. One
would naturally imagine that a dog given to perpetual barking, and in
this respect like the boy in the fable who cried “wolf,” would be of
comparatively little value as a watch. The Arabs, however, think
otherwise. They say truly that if a dog barks all night he cannot
possibly fall asleep, and that the change in his bark on the approach of
an intruder is quite sufficient to arouse the soundest sleeper. His
usual bark is a warning to the enemy that the sentries within the camp
are awake, and to his master it is a perpetual report of “all’s well.”
The hoarse voices of the dogs, the plaintive grumbling of the camels,
and the bleating of scores of lambs and kids, joining with the shrill
cries of the surrounding jackals, form a midnight chorus the reverse of
musical.
The flocks are generally tended by the young men and the children, while
the women are chiefly employed in grinding the barley for the use of the
family, churning butter, and weaving haircloth for tents and camel-bags.
In good years, that is, when there has been plenty of rain in winter and
spring, there is a considerable surplus of wheat and barley, which the
Arabs take for sale to Benghazi and Derna. Such, however, is their
improvidence, that little or no provision is made against a season of
drought, so that they are not unfrequently reduced to poverty and
starvation by the death of their cattle and the failure of the crops. In
ordinary years, a large quantity of butter is made. The only churn in
use is simply a goat-skin, which the women fill with milk and rock
backwards and forwards on their knees until the butter forms. The
buttermilk, called _Leben_, is one of the principal articles of food.
The butter (_Zibda_) when made, is melted in a pot, and salt added in
certain proportion. The curd part of the butter having sunk to the
bottom, the oily part is poured off into goat-skins prepared for the
purpose. This clarified butter, called _Semen_, is the only form in
which it is eaten by the Arabs, the _Zibda_ being considered unclean. It
is exported in large quantities to different parts of Turkey.
The dish in most general use among the Arabs is a thick kind of barley
porridge called _Bazeen_, seasoned with whatever they happen to have at
the time. The favourite condiment, however, is red pepper of capsicums,
which they consume in astonishing quantities when they have an
opportunity. When they wish to be luxurious, or to do honour to a
stranger, some melted _Semen_ is poured into the middle of the dish, and
in this each guest dips the _bolus_ of bazeen which he has kneaded with
his fingers into convenient size and shape for swallowing. When the
dish, or rather trough, is cleared, copious draughts of _leben_ finish
the repast.
A kind of unleavened bread is sometimes eaten, but as its preparation is
not so simple as the Bazeen, it is considered rather a luxury. It is
made in the following manner:—A large fire is kindled, and into it are
thrown a number of stones about the size of the fist; when they are
thoroughly heated, some of them are laid on the embers so as to form a
flat surface, on which the dough is placed and beaten out with the hand
to an average thickness of about an inch and a half. This cake is then
covered with the rest of the stones, and the red embers of the fire are
raked over the whole. In a few minutes the bread is cooked, and is eaten
at once before it cools. It is usually torn into small pieces, and
served up in a bazeen-dish with melted semen, in which form it is called
_Hobsa Mitruda_.
Wheaten bread is very rarely eaten; but the mode of baking it deserves
notice. A large wide-mouthed earthen pot, called _Taboona_, is placed on
the ground, and a fire kindled inside and around it. The dough is
kneaded in the usual manner in a wooden dish, and formed into flat round
loaves about three-quarters of an inch in thickness, and six or eight
inches in diameter. The _Nufaga_ taking one of these in her hand, sticks
it against the inside of the taboona, to which it adheres until it is
baked. Bread made in this way is called _Hobsa Taboona_, and if
carefully baked and quite fresh is very palatable.
Meat is never eaten except on such great occasions as a marriage feast,
or when it can be got for nothing. On such occasions it is devoured
alone without either salt or bread. Tea, coffee, and sugar, are all but
unknown.
The tents are of very simple construction, consisting simply of a broad
piece of haircloth stretched over two upright poles. The two ends and
the back are usually pegged down pretty close to the ground, and the
front left open. The cloth is generally made up of alternate strips of
black and white or black and brown. The cords, as well as the cloth, are
made of hair. The tents contain nothing but the most indispensable
articles; such as water-skins, butter-skins, camel-bags, a hand mill,
wooden bazeen-dishes, &c. The beds, if there are any, are simply bits of
haircloth or matting spread on the floor, and the barracans, or _Jered_,
worn by day are the only bedclothes during the night. When the weather
is very cold, the Arabs have rather an ingenious way of keeping
themselves warm. They dig a space under their beds about six inches in
depth, and fill it up with stones that have been heated in the fire,
over which they spread some twigs and leaves, and the mat on which they
sleep. By this arrangement the beds are kept warm for several hours.
[Illustration: PLATE 42.—INTERIOR OF MOHAMMED EL ADOULY’S TENT.]
The affairs of state of a tribe are settled by a _Medjlis_ or general
assembly of all the men belonging to it. These assemblies are called on
even the most trivial occasions, and sometimes last for several days.
The speeches are generally confined to the sheikhs; but any one is at
liberty to give his opinion. There is no particular method in the way in
which they arrive at a conclusion. After a great deal of talking, the
general mind of the meeting seems to become understood, and action is
taken accordingly. With a few exceptions, the sheikhs do not seem to
possess the power or influence usually attributed to them. The original
signification of “_sheikh_” (pronounced _shaich_, _ch_ guttural), is
simply “_old man_.”
The form of salutation among the Arabs is very peculiar. When two people
meet, they strike the palms of their hands against each other and kiss
them. Then commences a perfect torrent of questions on both sides
regarding each other’s welfare, but to which answers are never given:
such as, “Peace!” “Peace be with thee!” “How are you?” “How are you?”
“Peace!” “How are you?” “Peace be with thee!” “Are you very well?”
“Thanks be to God!” “How are you?” “Are you very well?” “What is your
colour?” “What is your colour?” “Peace be with thee!” and so on for
several minutes. After a pause, if they have nothing else to say, they
begin again _da capo_, “How are you?” &c., &c. One subject they are
never tired of asking about, viz., the price of grain, butter, and other
commodities at Benghazi and Derna. A man returning from either of these
places is therefore subjected by all the people he meets to a most
tedious cross examination on this interesting topic. Although they may
have asked the same questions immediately before, they receive the
answers with some such exclamation of surprise as Wallah! Mashallah! &c.
If you happen to be travelling from Benghazi, you get dreadfully “bored”
by the perpetual series of questions: “How much is barley?” “Ha,
Mashallah!” “How much is wheat?” “By God!” “How much is barley?” “God is
great!” “How much are bullocks?” “By God, it is good!” and so on until
you move off. Even then, however, so long as you are within earshot, the
same questions are shouted after you, so that just before you are
released by the distance from further interrogation, you may detect the
faint reply, “God is great!” and some such forgotten inquiry, as, “How
much are donkeys?”
[Illustration: PLATE 43.—ARAB ARMS OF THE CYRENAICA.]
The habit of swearing is very prevalent, the most trivial statements
being accompanied by the oath “_Wallah!_” or “_Wallahi!_” (By God!) If
the truth of the statement is doubted, this oath is repeated thrice in
succession with great emphasis: “Wallahi, Wallahi, Wallahi!” Its
impressiveness being much weakened by continual use, other forms of
asseveration are frequently added, such as: “Hakh El Senoussy!” (The
truth of Senoussy!), and even “Hakh Sidi Mustapha!” (The truth of Sidi
Mustapha!”), both of which expressions are considered much more solemn
by the Cyrene Arabs than the usual “Wallahi!”
The universal use of firearms is caused in a great measure by the
prevalence of the law of retaliation, or _Vendetta_. If a man of one
tribe or camp is killed by a man of another, his friends endeavour to
avenge his death by killing the manslayer, or, failing him, any one
belonging to his camp. A man is, consequently, quite uncertain whether
every thicket he passes may not conceal an enemy lying in wait to take
his life, and he is therefore constantly armed for the purpose of acting
in self-defence. The wearing of arms has thus become almost a necessity.
The prohibition by the Government of the sale and use of firearms and
gunpowder is of no effect, owing to the want of power to enforce it. For
the same reason the Government takes no cognizance of any crimes but
such as directly interfere with the collection of the tribute; so that
the Arabs are left at perfect liberty to indulge their propensities for
murder, robbery, and theft as much as they please. Let the reader
imagine a country some miles in length, inhabited by a proud, passionate
race of barbarians, who are divided into innumerable tribes and
families, mutually jealous of each other, with no fixed dwelling-places,
and under no restraint from the force of public law,—and he will have a
fair idea of the state of Barbary at the present day.
[Illustration: Pl. 44.
WADY LEBAIATH, BETWEEN CYRENE AND APOLLONIA
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
CHAPTER X.
PREVIOUSLY to the arrival of the _Assurance_, we made several excursions
to different places in the Cyrenaica, the first of which was to Marsa
Sousah, for the purpose of examining the road, with a view to the future
transport of the Bacchus and other statues. Accompanied by Cesareo and
Amor, we started from Cyrene on the 14th of January, and reached Marsa
Sousah in four hours. The present Arab path follows the ancient road,
which is distinctly marked by the deep tracks of the chariot-wheels.
After crossing the lower plateau, the road approaches the head of the
Augubah, through a dense wood of juniper, carub, and olive trees; on
emerging from which it is carried across a sort of saddleback between
two exceedingly picturesque wadys, about 1,000 feet in depth. A sketch
of one of which is given in Plate 44.
[Illustration: PLATE 45.—EASTERN CITY WALL AND RUINS OF APOLLONIA.]
The remains of the ancient city of Apollonia are not of great interest,
and seem generally to belong to a comparatively late period. The city
wall can be easily traced throughout its circuit, some parts of it still
standing to a considerable height. Just outside the wall, on the eastern
side of the city, is a theatre in a very perfect state of preservation,
and within the wall the ground is almost covered with the ruins of
ancient buildings. Among these are the remains of two temples,
distinguishable by the heaps of fallen columns, capitals, and
architraves. Of the two, one is of white marble, and the other of a
coarse Cipollino marble streaked with green, which has probably given
rise to the erroneous report that large columns of _verde antico_ are to
be found among the ruins of Apollonia. In the immediate vicinity of the
city are a number of plain tombs cut in the rock, now used as grain-
stores by the few Greek traders who occasionally visit this place for
the purchase of the produce of the country. In a mass of ruins within
the city we found two Latin crosses engraved on blocks of marble, almost
the only decided relics of Christianity we met with in the Cyrenaica. On
the northern side of the city there were some ancient tanks, and traces
of an aqueduct could also be made out. The harbour, which is too small
and shallow for even the coasting vessels of the present day, is
protected from seaward by some rocky islets at its entrance.
As we had no tent with us, we took up our quarters for the night in the
outer chamber of an ancient tomb, where we were visited in the evening
by a neighbour troglodyte, a skipper from Candia. He spoke the
inarticulate Turkish patois common to all Candiotes, and, although he
looked more like a Greek than a Turk, called himself a Mussulman. He was
buying up all the grain and butter he could get from the Arabs, while
waiting for his vessel, which was gradually collecting a cargo at
different places along the coast. Some of his sailors were with him to
assist in keeping guard at night, as the Arabs were continually on the
look-out for an opportunity of robbing him. He told us he had
established himself in a tomb with a single narrow entrance, so that he
could defend himself against considerable odds. We gave him some powder
and bullets, for which he was very thankful, as his stock was by this
time nearly expended.
During the night we were aroused by a creeping, rustling sound close to
us, which made us instinctively seize our guns and revolvers. While
straining our eyes to detect an Arab assassin in the surrounding
darkness, the cause of alarm, in the form of a huge porcupine, suddenly
emerged from an inner chamber of the tomb, rushed through the
smouldering fire that was burning in front, and made his escape amid a
cloud of sparks and flame.
Our friend the Candiote told us there was a much better anchorage than
Marsa Sousah at a place called Sousa Hamema, about fifteen miles to the
westward. On further inquiry regarding it, he said that its excellence
consisted in the fact that a vessel could _get away_ from it if a storm
came on from seaward, whereas it was almost impossible to beat out of
Marsa Sousah in the teeth of a northerly wind. We resolved to visit it
on the first favourable opportunity.
We returned to Cyrene the following day in a perfect torrent of rain,
from which, however, we were well protected by our burnouses, which had
been equally serviceable as beds the night before.
Shortly after this, we visited a place called Imghernis, spoken of by
the Arabs as full of ancient ruins. It is situated near the edge of the
upper plateau, about eight miles from Cyrene. A number of walls and
buildings are still standing, some of them to the height of about thirty
feet. They seem, however, to be of a late period, and almost no traces
of marble are to be seen. In the neighbourhood are a good many tombs,
both built and excavated, some of which are of evidently much earlier
date than the ruins of the town.[4] There were also several large
reservoirs cut in the rock, and roofed over with long flags of stone.
On the occasion of a second visit which we paid to Imghernis some time
afterwards, we were greatly annoyed by a tribe of Arabs, who surrounded
us, and in the most dictatorial manner ordered us to leave the place.
They threatened to shoot us, and for some time seemed on the point of
actually trying to do so. Amor, however, meanwhile advised them for
their own sakes not to attempt violence, telling them quietly that all
who had in any way thwarted us at Cyrene, including the Mudir and Sidi
Mustapha himself, had suffered in consequence; and that they might rest
assured that the Consul at Benghazi would have ample vengeance for any
injury we might receive. After some time, they showed their faith in the
soundness of his advice by moving off; and although we remained at
Imghernis all night and part of next day, we saw no more of them.
[Illustration: Pl. 46.
RUINS OF IMGHERNIS
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
Our next excursion was to Derna; one object of our trip, among others,
being to pay a visit to Mr. De Fremeaux, the British vice-consul, who
had very kindly sent us from time to time such supplies as we required
which Derna could afford. We started with Cesareo from Cyrene on the
26th of February, taking with us Amor’s brother, Abderrahim, and a camel
to carry a tent and baggage. Two hours and a half after starting, we
passed a few indefinite ruins at a place called Labrak, the scene, some
thirty years ago, of the great battle between the tribes of Birasa and
Haasa, the former under their redoubtable Sheikh Bou Bakr Ben Hadood.
The Haasa were completely defeated, and 700 of them are said to have
been buried on the battle-field.
An hour and a quarter further on, and a little to the left of the road,
are a few ruins called by the Arabs Gabiout Younes, where there is an
arched gateway of recent date still standing nearly perfect. About a
mile beyond, are the ruins of what seems to have been a place of some
importance, now called by the Arabs Tirt, where we found a small Zauyah,
containing a rude building used as a mosque. The Arabs who were
loitering about the place gave us a malicious scowl as we passed, but
did not interfere with us. No traces of architectural buildings were to
be seen.
From Tirt we rode about seven miles through a wood of arbutus and
juniper, over a rough stony road, to Lamloudeh (Lebdis), where there are
the remains of a town of considerable extent. Among the ruins are a
number of very perfect arches and tombs, and also some large reservoirs
at which we watered the horses and filled our water-skins. From
Lamloudeh we continued our journey till sunset, when we halted for the
night, encamping on the side of a hill called Kubbeh, where we found two
fountains of good water, and some tombs excavated in the rock.
The following morning we started early, and rode about ten miles over a
monotonous undulating country containing neither shrub nor tree. In this
plain we passed some ruins on a slight eminence, close to the road
called Beit Thamr, and a little further on, some tombs cut in the rock.
We then entered a wood of arbutus, juniper, and olive, which, with a few
breaks, extended to the head of the Augubah, where we first came within
view of the seashore, and in the distance, away to the eastward, the
town of Derna. The neighbouring hills are perfectly bare, so that the
town, with its luxuriant date-gardens, forms quite an oasis in the stony
desert around. The Augubah is similar to that of Marsa Sousah, being in
fact part of the same range of mountains. The descent is very steep, and
in some places where the surface of the rock has been worn smooth, it is
very difficult for the horses to keep their feet. We got to the plain at
the bottom in half an hour, after which we had a two hours’ ride over
loose stones and shingle before we reached the town. The whole distance
from Cyrene is sixteen hours, or about fifty miles.
On our arrival we were most hospitably received by Mr. De Fremeaux, who
kindly furnished us with quarters at his house. He had himself arrived
only a month before to succeed Mr. Aquilina, who had occupied the post
of unpaid consular agent at Derna for upwards of a quarter of a century,
during which time he was generally the only European in the place. In
the course of the evening we were visited by the Kolaghassi (Major)
commanding the troops, and the recently appointed Mudir, to whom we had
given a passage in the _Boxer_ from Tripoli to Benghazi. The Kolaghassi,
who indulged in an amount of snuff perfectly astonishing, seemed, from
the compound effect of tobacco and raki, to be in an incipient state of
_delirium tremens_. The Mudir, an Albanian by birth, had spent the last
twenty years in Barbary and Fezzan. Both were profuse in their offers of
friendship, and the Mudir, on returning to the castle, sent us as a
present a Roman silver coin and a small silver sphinx which had been
found in the neighbourhood.
The town of Derna, with its gardens, covers a small triangular plain,
formed by a projection of the seashore from the base of the range of
hills already so frequently referred to. The shingly bed of a deep wady,
which recedes several miles into the range, divides the small plain and
the town into two distinct portions. On the eastern side are the two
villages of Upper and Lower Bou Mansour; and on the western, a village
on a spur of the hills called Il Maghar, Derna proper lying immediately
below, and a small detached village, called Gebéli, near the projecting
headland. The whole assemblage of villages constitutes the town of
Derna, which is supposed to occupy the site of the ancient Darnis. The
remains of a few ancient walls may be traced in different parts of the
town; and the name of the village on the spur, Il Maghar (the cave or
rock-tomb), denotes the existence there of ancient sepulchres.
The beauty and fertility of the little plain of Derna are owing to the
copious stream of fresh water which flows down the bed of the wady. Some
two or three miles above the town the water is collected into an
artificial aqueduct, by which it is led into the town, and thence
distributed over the surrounding fields and gardens by means of small
lateral branches. To insure the regular supply to every man’s property,
a “Chief of the Water” is appointed, whose duty it is to see that a
supply is sent to every district in succession, and to prevent any one
from diverting for his own use the stream that for the time belongs to
his neighbour. Water-stealing is very properly considered a serious
crime, and is punished accordingly.
The houses are built with lime, and are altogether much superior to
those of Benghazi. Most of them, too, are whitewashed, which gives the
town a clean, wholesome appearance. Derna proper is surrounded on all
sides by luxuriant gardens, and appeared to us a perfect Paradise after
the wild and uncultivated country we had been accustomed to; but whether
a stranger, coming direct from Malta or Candia, would be equally struck
with its beauty it is difficult to say. Fruits and vegetables of all
kinds grow in abundance, particularly dates, melons, figs, grapes,
pomegranates, and bananas. The thick groves of tall palm-trees form a
conspicuous and beautiful feature in the scene.
The town contains a large mosque, a bath, a market-place, a small
bazaar, and a castle built at the same time as those of Merdj and
Ghegheb. There is a considerable export trade in grain, butter, and
wool, chiefly to Canea, in Crete. In the bazaar are shops or stalls of
different kinds, most of which belong to Jews. The town Arabs being to
some extent civilized, look down on their brethren, the Bedouins of the
country, and think them fair game for any amount of deception and
practical joking. An instance of this occurred in the case of our camel-
driver. While lounging about the bazaar, an auctioneer showed him a pair
of pistols he was selling at the time, and asked him what he thought of
them. “Wallah! zain” (By God! good), was the reply. In a short time the
auctioneer returned, bawling out a large price as the last bid, and
handing the pistols to the camel-driver, again asked his opinion of
their quality. “Wallah! zain!” repeated the camel-driver. “Well, no one
has bid higher than you, so here they are, and give me the money.” “But
I never bid for them at all! I have no money to buy such pistols as
these!” “No money! Never bid! Did you not say ‘Wallah! zain!’ when I bid
a price for you? Wallahi! if you do not pay you go to prison.” The other
Arabs in the bazaar took up the chorus, “Wallahi! you shall go to
prison. We’ll have none of your Bedouin tricks here!” and to the castle
prison he was hauled off accordingly. He was, of course, released when
his companion, Abderrahim, came and told us of his misfortune.
[Illustration: Pl. 47.
DERNA
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
We returned the visit of the Mudir, and also called on the Kolaghassi,
who told us that if we would come to the castle the next day he would
have the troops turned out and put through their drill in our presence.
He considered himself a great tactician, and showed us a Turkish book on
military movements, illustrated with diagrams, by the study of which he
said he had acquired his proficiency. When we went to the castle on the
following morning, after the usual pipes and coffee, he showed us the
barrack-rooms, &c., which were all in very good order. He pointed out
with great pride some fantastic arabesques in red and black with which
the white-washed walls were covered, informing us that they were all
designed by himself. They forcibly reminded us of the way in which a
small boy delights to ornament a blank wall with a piece of chalk. The
two companies of infantry were by this time drawn up for inspection.
Their clothing was certainly not of the best quality, but their arms
were good and in excellent condition. Some manœuvres were then executed
in an open space in front of the castle. The men drilled very steadily,
although impeded in their movements by the clumsy formation of three
ranks, and the interference of the supernumeraries, whose chief
occupation seemed to consist in kicking the shins of the men in the rear
rank.
On the last day of our stay we rode about five miles up the wady,
accompanied by Mr. de Fremeaux. The sides are very steep, and in many
places quite perpendicular; and the stream which flows along the bed
causes a luxuriant growth of reeds and oleanders, which give the ravine
a most picturesque appearance.
[Illustration: PLATE 48.—CASTLE OF DERNA.]
Before leaving Derna we examined the shops in the bazaar and bought
everything useful we could find. On the fourth day after our arrival we
left for Cyrene, which we reached without incident the following day. It
was during our absence that our workmen made the first discoveries of
sculpture at the Temple of Apollo.
On the 3rd of April we visited Sousah Hamema (Phycus), the anchorage
spoken of by the Candiote skipper. It is confounded by Beechey with
Apollonia, which he calls Marsa Sousah Hamema. The one place is Marsa
Sousah and the other Sousah Hamema, so named from the number of rock-
pigeons (hamem) which frequent its neighbourhood. The distance from
Cyrene, seven hours or twenty-one miles, was greater than we had been
led to believe. From the foot of the Cyrene range we crossed the lower
plateau in a north-western direction, and descended the Augubah to the
plain on the shore by a steep rocky tract exactly similar to those on
the roads to Marsa Sousah and Derna. About two hours to the westward of
this point, we reached Sousah Hamema, which occupies the point called
Ras Sem, a name which seems to have become obsolete, as none of the
Arabs we spoke to were acquainted with it. The harbour is simply a small
bay not half a mile wide, and perfectly open to the north. We found a
small schooner from Canea at anchor outside. Remains of buildings were
to be seen on both sides of the bay, and also a considerable number of
rock tombs. The eastern side, however, which contained the greater
number of these, was occupied by one of those pests of Barbary, a
Zauyah, which prevented our making an examination of it. As there was
nothing of interest to detain us, we left in the evening to return to
Cyrene. Night overtook us in the plain at the foot of the Augubah; but
after dark we saw at some distance the light of a fire, which guided us
to an Arab camp, where we passed the night. The following day we
returned to Cyrene by a path some five or six miles to the eastward of
the one by which we had gone to Sousah Hamema the day before. In
traversing the lower plateau, both going and coming, we very often
passed the traces of ancient roads, and the remains of tombs and other
buildings, which clearly showed that the whole plain had at a former
period been thickly inhabited.
Having now examined the sites of all the cities of the Pentapolis except
Teuchira and Ptolemais, we proposed to visit those places before the hot
weather set in for the summer. The month of April is by far the most
agreeable season for travelling in this part of Africa. The water which
has collected here and there during the winter is not yet dried up by
the heat of the sun, so that a sufficient quantity for replenishing the
water-skins can always be obtained without much trouble. The heavy rains
which make a winter journey so unpleasant, are by this time past, the
weather is cool and bright, and the country is covered with a varied
vegetation which adds greatly to the beauty of the scenery. Later in the
year, the traveller would fail to recognize many a lovely valley which
he had admired only a month or two before.
We left Cyrene on the 13th of April, accompanied by Amor and three of
his friends in the capacity of guides and escort, with a camel to carry
our tent, bedding, and provisions. Taking the road to Merdj and
Benghazi, we passed close to the Zauyah El Beidah and along the
beautiful Wady Il Aggur to Gusr Biligadem, where we encamped for the
night. Many parts of the road, and particularly the eight or nine miles
through the Wady Il Aggur, were rich and beautiful beyond description.
Trees and shrubs were in full bloom, and flowers of endless variety hung
in clusters from the branches of the trees, twined up the faces of the
cliffs, and covered the fresh greensward at our feet, filling the air
with the most delicious perfume. Roses, honeysuckle, myrtle, and
oleander grew in great profusion. The country sometimes appeared a
literal bed of roses.
While riding along the wady, we noticed that the partridges, when
disturbed, had the peculiar habit of alighting on trees, in which
position we shot three or four of them.
Our next day’s journey was also through a very fine country, the road
passing over a succession of hills and valleys. The hills were generally
overgrown with juniper, arbutus, and brushwood, with occasionally trees
of larger growth, such as the oak, the carub or locust-tree, and the
olive; and the valleys were either sown with grain or left fallow for
pasture. After travelling eight hours and a half, we pitched our tent in
a gully near an Arab camp, where we were soon joined by a large party of
Arabs on their way to Benghazi. They were all very civil, and the women
in the camp prepared a huge dish of bazeen for our supper, besides
supplying us liberally with water and leben. We shared with the company
the partridges we had shot, and gave them what they had never seen
before,—a cup of tea. The partridges were cooked _au naturel_ in a very
primitive manner, being simply thrown into the fire as they were,
feathers and all.
It may be mentioned here that the Arabs are much more scrupulous than
the Turks regarding the sin of eating unclean animals, or such as have
not been killed by a Mahommedan according to the requirements of the
Koran. When an animal is to be killed, the operator, before cutting its
throat, turns its head in the direction of Mecca, and invokes a
blessing. The short prayer, the look towards the Gibli, and the letting
of blood afterwards, are the three essential forms which must in all
cases be complied with. The attention paid to this law was of great
convenience to us when shooting in the company of our Arab attendants,
as it saved us the trouble of picking up the game we killed. Whenever a
bird fell, one of the Arabs was sure to rush after it, knife in hand, to
take its life in an orthodox manner before it had given its final kick.
They could thus partake with a clear conscience of what we had shot
during the day; otherwise they had to content themselves with a piece of
dry bread or biscuit for dinner. The Arabs themselves hardly ever shoot,
powder and lead being much too valuable to throw away on any game less
noble than man.
About half an hour after starting on the following morning, the 15th, we
came to a group of ancient wells, some four or five in number, called
the “Libiar Il Gharib.” They were carefully lined with masonry, and
contained a good supply of excellent water. Many such wells and cisterns
still exist as the monuments of a former age; but, with a few rare
exceptions, they are now choked up and dilapidated. We halted here for
about an hour to draw water for the camel and the horses, and to let the
Arabs have their breakfast. From Il Gharib the same hilly country
continued for about three hours, after which the road emerged on the
large plain of Bograta, which is surrounded by hills, and contains a few
half-ruined wells. We halted a few minutes at a camp near the end of the
plain, where we drank camel’s milk for the first time. It is considered
wholesome, but is certainly not very palatable, as it tastes somewhat
like cow’s milk mixed with salt. Leaving Bograta, the road led through a
gorge in the mountains, from the mouth of which we looked down upon the
great plain of Merdj, stretching away to the south and west as far as
the eye could reach.
We had heard from Benghazi that our old friend Hadji Achmet Bin ’l Agha
had resigned his governorship, and was at Benghazi on his way home; so
that, on our arrival at the castle in the afternoon, we were most
agreeably surprised to find him back again as hearty and hospitable as
ever. He gave us a most cordial welcome, and seemed truly delighted to
see us. He had none of the ceremonial politeness so common in the East,
but was really a downright honest, good-hearted fellow, a perfect John
Bull, both in appearance and disposition.
As it was past noon when we arrived, we stayed all night at the castle,
where, besides Hadji Achmet himself, we found the newly-appointed Mudirs
of Ghegheb and Derna and a military kaimacam, who had been sent from
Tripoli as receiver-general of the miri, or tribute, from the country
east of Benghazi. They were accompanied by Suliman Captan, one of the
most remarkable men in the country. He was the grandson of a Scotch
captain, who had turned Mahommedan, and settled in Tripoli, where he
became a sort of admiral under the Beys of the Karamanli dynasty.
Suliman Captan was Mudir of Ghegheb immediately before Lemin Ben Sitewi,
and during his tenure of office acquired a great reputation for the
courageous manner in which he kept the Arabs under his control. The
tribes about Cyrene still retained a lively recollection of his own
rule. On one occasion, however, his boldness nearly cost him his life. A
tribe of Arabs having refused to pay their miri, he went to their camps,
attended by only eight soldiers, to insist upon payment. Thinking this a
favourable opportunity for paying off many an old score, the tribe
surrounded him in overpowering numbers, determined to take his life.
Nothing daunted, he cut his way through the whole mob, and succeeded in
gaining the castle, although with no less than four bullets in his body.
A broad scar right across his forehead marks the track of a ball from
which he can have escaped with his life only by a hair’s breadth.
The new Mudir of Ghegheb, as we were informed by a letter from Mr.
Crowe, had received the most stringent orders from the Kaimacam to
attend to our requisitions, and afford us every assistance in his power.
He seemed a weak, mild individual, not at all fitted for the difficult
task of extracting the due amount of tribute from the unruly tribes he
had to deal with, and still less to be of much use to us, should we ever
have occasion to require his intervention on our behalf. We were told by
Hadji Achmet that the Pacha of Tripoli, aware of his weakness, had
appointed as his official adviser the famous Bou Bakr Ben Hadood, the
head of the large tribe of Birasa, who had been governor of the Ghegheb
district for many years, both under the Karamanlis and the Turks. On our
return to Cyrene, we found that this appointment had stirred up the
wrath of our neighbours, the Haasa, who had never forgiven Bou Bakr for
their signal defeat by him at Labrak. Their mutual hatred and fear gave
rise, as we shall presently see, to serious disturbances.
[Illustration: PLATE 49.—ARAB CAMP NEAR TEUCHIRA.]
We remained at Merdj till the middle of the following day, when we
started for Teuchira. The road led, in a north-western direction, from
the castle over a level grassy plain, which gradually sloped up to the
brink of the Augubah, near which we pitched our tent for the night,
close to an Arab encampment. The country was better cultivated and more
thickly inhabited than any part of the Cyrenaica we had yet seen. Early
next morning, the 17th, we descended the Augubah by a much better road
than those at Marsa Sousah and Derna, and reached the ruins of Teuchira
in about two hours, the distance from Merdj being altogether about
eight. We encamped in one of the large quarries, to the eastward of the
city.
Teuchira, named by the Ptolemies, Arsinoë, is now called Tocra, an
Arabic corruption of its original name. It stands on the sea-shore,
about two miles from the foot of the Augubah, and about 38 miles from
Benghazi (Hesperis). The remains of the ancient city are of
comparatively little interest, and consist for the most part of
indefinite heaps of ruined buildings belonging to the period of the
Roman occupation of the country. The city wall, rebuilt by the Emperor
Justinian, is in good preservation, and in many places still stands to
its original height. In its circuit of nearly a mile and a half, there
are altogether twenty-six quadrangular towers, which project from the
general line of the wall, for the purpose of flank defence. Within the
walls, we could distinguish the sites of several temples and churches,
in one of which we observed a Greek cross deeply engraved on a stone;
but not a vestige of marble was anywhere to be seen. Outside the city
are a number of quarries, in the sides of which there are many excavated
tombs. These are generally plain chambers, devoid of ornament of any
kind; a few, however, are painted, and some of them contain inscriptions
cut on small faces sunk in the face of the rock, which have a remarkable
resemblance to mural tablets in churches at the present day.
[Illustration: Pl. 50.
RUINS OF PTOLEMAIS
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
The country in the vicinity abounded with partridges, quail, snipe,
pigeons, and doves. The weather on the day of our arrival was very
disagreeable, squalls and heavy showers coming on at frequent intervals.
Next day, the 18th, was little better; but as we had passed a most
comfortless and sleepless night amid swarms of fleas, and as nothing of
interest remained to be seen, we started about mid-day for Tolmeitah
(Ptolemais).
There was a very fair road following the line of the shore the whole
way. We saw no remarkable ruins, although we occasionally passed the
remains of ancient buildings. Towards evening we came within view of a
high building that marks from a great distance the situation of
Tolmeitah. As we approached, we found that it was a large tomb of
excellent construction, about half a mile to the westward of the city.
It was now getting dark, and we pitched our tent in an ancient quarry
between the large tomb and the western gate of the city, choosing this
spot, as at Tocra, on account of the shelter it afforded from the wind.
The distance from Tocra was altogether seven hours and a half, or about
twenty-five miles. Some Arabs, who had halted for the night in the next
quarry to ours, were very anxious to sell us part of a dead camel, and
seemed quite astonished when we told them we would not have it if they
offered it for nothing. The animal they said had broken down, and they
had cut its throat “to save its life,” so that the flesh was perfectly
good for food.
The two following days were spent in examining the ruins under the
guidance of the Arabs of a small encampment we found near the foot of
the hills. We were sorry to hear from them that we had just missed
meeting an English man-of-war, which had anchored off Tolmeitah the day
before our arrival. From their description we conjectured rightly that
it was the _Medina_, Captain Spratt, then surveying the coast,
preparatory to the laying of the Malta and Alexandria telegraph cable.
Three of the officers, accompanied by an interpreter, had landed and
remained on shore half the day.
The position of Ptolemais is very similar to that of Teuchira and
Apollonia, the only difference being that at Ptolemais the ground rises
more rapidly from the shore to the foot of the hills, which at this
point come to within a mile and a quarter from the coast. The city,
which is nearly square in form, occupies the whole breadth of the slope
between the hills and the sea, and is inclosed by walls which can still
be distinctly traced. The great gateway in the western wall is still
standing, and is remarkable for the excellence of its masonry. It is
built of massive ashlar-work without mortar, the stones of which are
laid in alternate courses of “headers” and “stretchers,” like English
bond brickwork. The faces of the stones are roughly dressed, and the
joints deeply sunk like the “rustic” work of the present day. The
otherwise unbroken surface of the walls is thereby relieved, and the
general appearance of the building greatly improved.
The eastern wall of the city follows the side of a small ravine leading
to the sea from one of the Wadys in the range of hills above. At a point
nearly opposite the centre of the wall, this ravine is spanned by the
arch of a bridge still standing, which appears to have been built for an
aqueduct, which we could trace distinctly for some distance from the
city. Within the walls the aqueduct led in the direction of a series of
enormous reservoirs near the centre of the city, which were pointed out
to us by one of the Arabs. Guided by him, we crept underground through a
small opening into a chamber, about one hundred feet long and twenty
feet broad, completely arched over, from which we passed through a
series of about half a dozen similar vaults, all of apparently the same
size, and connected with each other by doorways in the walls below the
springing of the semicircular arches of the roofs. They were beautifully
built of ashlar-work, and lined with cement, but were so filled up with
rubbish that we could not make out either their exact length or their
number, as only parts of them were clear enough to allow a passage. In
one or two of them there was a little water, to which some goats had
found their way by a larger opening than that by which we entered. They
were, doubtless, built by the Romans, and must have been of the greatest
benefit to the city, as the country along the shore is much more liable
to droughts than the high land beyond the Augubah. “We are informed,”
says Beechey, “that the town of Ptolemeta suffered at one time so
severely from want of water, that the inhabitants were obliged to
relinquish their houses and disperse themselves about the country in
different directions. The reparation of the aqueducts and cisterns of
the town, which, it seems, had fallen into decay, restored Ptolemeta to
its former flourishing state; and this act is recorded among many others
of a similar nature performed at the command of Justinian in the eulogy
of that emperor by Procopius. As Ptolemeta is unprovided with springs,
the care of its reservoirs and aqueducts must have been at all times
peculiarly essential; and we find that its buildings of this class are
among the most perfect of its existing remains.”
[Illustration: PLATE 51.—GATEWAY IN THE WESTERN WALL OF PTOLEMAIS.]
Close by the entrance to the reservoirs stand three Ionic columns, the
most conspicuous objects among the ruins of the city. They seem to have
formed part of a colonnade which surrounded a space paved with mosaic
immediately over the reservoirs. There are some Corinthian and Doric
columns lying on the ground, which also appear to have formed part of
the same colonnade. There is no trace of building within the inclosure.
Between the reservoirs and the sea are the remains of a very large
building, the walls of which are still standing to a considerable
height, although there is nothing left to denote with certainty what the
nature of the building was. It may, very probably, have been a Roman
bath.
[Illustration: Pl. 52.
TOMBS TO THE WESTWARD OF PTOLEMAIS
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
[Illustration: Pl. 53.
PTOLEMAIS. PLAN OF A CONSPICUOUS TOMB ON THE WESTERN SIDE OF THE CITY.
BY COMMANDER E. A. PORCHER R.N.
Day & Son, Lith. to the Queen]
Close to where the western wall touches the shore, there is a small
harbour protected by a projecting point of land, and a small rocky
island, which were at one time connected by an artificial pier. The
space thus inclosed is so shallow, and so limited in extent, that it can
only have been available for a few light vessels.
Of all the remains of Ptolemais, the most prominent is the large tomb to
the westward of the city, which we passed on the evening of our arrival
(Plates 52 and 53). It is 55 feet in height, and is still in very
perfect condition. It is built on a square platform of rock with scarped
sides, about five or six feet above the surrounding ground, and contains
a central chamber which occupies the whole length of the tomb, with
lateral recesses for the reception of the sarcophagi. Close to the
entrance is a staircase, which we found sufficiently perfect to enable
us to climb to the top. In the neighbourhood are a number of quarries
containing excavated tombs similar to those at Teuchira, many of which
have the names of the occupants inscribed on the face of the rock.
[Illustration: PLATE 54.—INSCRIPTIONS OVER THE ENTRANCES TO THE TOMBS AT
PTOLEMAIS.]
Our last night at Ptolemais was a very uncomfortable one, on account of
a very strong gibli, or southerly wind, which nearly choked us with
clouds of dust and sand, and necessitated our turning out every half-
hour to hammer in the pegs of the tent. We packed up at daybreak, and
after paying a last visit to the ruins, started for Merdj about the
middle of the day on the 21st. After riding about two miles to the
westward of the city, we turned up one of the wadys to our left, and
commenced the ascent of the Augubah. The strong gibli was still blowing,
so that although we were greatly sheltered by the range of hills, it
made our journey very fatiguing and unpleasant. When about half-way up,
we found that our guides had mistaken the path, and brought us to a
regular _cul de sac_, from which there was no exit but by returning as
we came, or climbing what appeared the insurmountable hill in front. We
chose the latter alternative, and after nearly an hour’s exertions,
reached the top with our horses, where we lay down under some bushes to
wait for the camel. We soon found, however, that it was impossible to
get him up, so we left the drivers to seek the proper pass, while we
rode on in the direction of Merdj. It was difficult to find a way across
country among the almost impassable wadys by which we were surrounded;
but after a two hours’ ride we had the satisfaction of seeing before us
the great plain of Merdj, dotted over with Arab camps. Thoroughly
parched by the exertion of climbing, and the burning heat of the gibli,
we hurried to the nearest tents for something to quench our thirst. The
cool fresh leben, which was readily offered us by the women, was
peculiarly refreshing.
A little after sunset we reached the castle, where we were greeted by
the cheery welcome of our kind friend Hadji Achmet. A really sumptuous
dinner of bread, rice, mutton, and eggs, was soon prepared and most
heartily partaken of. Fatigued as we were with a hard day’s work after a
sleepless night, we thoroughly enjoyed the luxury of sleeping on the
soft bed-quilts so mindfully provided by our host.
The camel with our baggage arrived the following day at 11 o’clock; and
about the same time Amor, whom we had sent with letters from Teuchira to
Benghazi, made his appearance. As there was now nothing to detain us, we
started at three in the afternoon for Cyrene, after taking leave of
Hadji Achmet, who, as usual, loaded us with presents of corn and
provisions. The hot gibli was now blowing more fiercely than ever, and
felt as if it came from the mouth of a furnace. The air was so thick
with impalpably fine sand that even the sun was invisible. Several
square miles of the plain around us were covered with magnificent crops
of nearly full-grown wheat, which I found, on a subsequent visit, were
utterly destroyed by this day’s gibli. Between nine and ten o’clock we
reached the Libiar Il Gharib, near which we passed the night in a hollow
of the rock, which was preferable to the tent during the hot wind.
Wrapped up in our burnouses, we slept soundly, notwithstanding the rain
which came on in the night, and from which the overhanging rock only
partially sheltered us. The following day we continued our journey, and
encamped at night at our old halting-place, Gusr Biligadem. The gibli
had by this time given way to a fresh cool breeze from the north, which
completely transformed the aspect of the country. Next day (the 24th) we
reached our quarters at Cyrene, glad to find ourselves again at home.
During our absence of twelve days, we had travelled over about 250
miles, the distance in hours being as follows:—
From Cyrene to Zauyah El Beidah 3½ hours.
„ „ Gusr Biligadem 9 „
„ „ Gusr Merdj 25 „
„ Merdj to Teuchira 7¾ „
„ Teuchira to Ptolemais 7½ „
„ Ptolemais to Merdj 5½ „
„ Merdj to Libiar Il Gharib 7 „
„ „ Gusr Biligadem 16 „
During the fortnight that elapsed between our return to Cyrene and the
arrival of the _Assurance_, a serious disturbance arose in the country,
caused, as already mentioned, by the appointment of Bou Bakr Ben Hadood
as the official adviser and associate of the new Mudir of Ghegheb.
According to custom, the sheikhs of the different tribes, and among
others the ten sheikhs of the Haasa, among whom we lived, went to the
castle to pay their respects to the newly-appointed governor. Before
this time, however, Bou Bakr had told the Mudir that the Haasa sheikhs
were a rebellious, turbulent set, whom he should seize and imprison on
the first favourable opportunity. Their coming to the castle on a
peaceful errand was accordingly taken advantage of for carrying this
sage advice into execution. The men of the tribe, on learning that their
sheikhs had fallen into the power of their old enemy, appealed to us for
assistance, and requested us to write to the consul at Benghazi, to
obtain the liberation of their chiefs. We told them that, as the matter
in no way concerned ourselves or any one in our service, it was
impossible for us to interfere. They thereupon called a medjlis, or
assembly of the whole tribe, in which it was determined to release the
sheikhs by force before further evil should befall them. They
accordingly assembled, to the number of about 1,000, in the
neighbourhood of the castle, and attacked it at midnight. The gate soon
yielded to their blows, and the garrison was at their mercy. Some firing
had meantime taken place, in which six Arabs and two soldiers were
killed or wounded. The prisoners were immediately released; but the
castle was searched in vain for Bou Bakr, who had wisely retired the day
before to the camps of his own tribe of Birasa.
The sheikhs, however, were no sooner at liberty than they began to
reflect on the unpleasant position they were placed in by the rash zeal
of their followers. The Sultan’s castle had been attacked, and the
Sultan’s soldiers killed; and although they themselves had been
prisoners at the time, they knew that it would be vain to disavow their
complicity in the act of their tribe. Such an open and violent insult to
the Government must, they feared, be in some way avenged by the Pacha,
who might possibly send hosts of soldiers to exterminate the tribe. At
all events, they would suffer severely by being excluded from their only
markets, Benghazi and Derna, by the fear of their falling into the hands
of the Pacha. A Medjlis was called to deliberate on their difficulties,
at which it was determined to make a second application to us for
assistance. The sheikhs accordingly came to our quarters, and in the
name of the whole tribe begged us to intercede in their behalf. They
urged that they had been imprisoned simply to gratify Bou Bakr, and for
no offence of their own; nevertheless, that, to preserve the peace, they
had represented to the Mudir that they could not answer for the
consequences if at least one of their number were not allowed out of
prison to control the passions of the Arabs, while the remaining nine
were retained as hostages. As this was refused, and they were all kept
in close confinement, they knew nothing of what was going on until they
heard the firing and battering at the gate of the Castle during the
assault. It would, therefore, be unjust to punish them for a crime of
which they were perfectly innocent, and it would even be hard to hold
the tribe responsible for its actions when suddenly and treacherously
deprived of the advice and guidance of their only chiefs. It was
certainly wrong to attack the Castle; but what was to be expected in the
circumstances; and had they not warned the Mudir of the consequences of
his own act? Besides, by appealing to us in the first instance, the
tribe had taken the only peaceable means they had of obtaining the
release of their sheikhs.
We asked them why they did not tell or write all this to the Pacha, who
was the proper judge of their conduct. Their answer was, “You know
yourselves well enough what the result would be; our remonstrances would
never be listened to, and we or our messengers would only be seized and
imprisoned with irons: our only hope in a case like this is in the
Consul.” We said that if the Consul interfered, the Pacha had a perfect
right to say, “Are the Haasa Arabs Englishmen? This is none of your
business.” “There is no chance,” replied they, “of his saying anything
of the kind; when the Consul speaks, the Pacha must obey.”
As we knew very well that the Pacha had not the power to punish the
tribe, we thought it probable that he would be glad of any excuse for
saving his dignity by pardoning the offence. We therefore believed that
our intercession would be as welcome on the one side as on the other;
and, if successful, that it would be most useful to ourselves, by
establishing our influence over the tribe in whose country we resided.
Mr. Crowe having left for England, we wrote to the above effect to Mr.
Aquilina, then acting as vice-consul at Benghazi, and requested him to
use his own discretion in bringing the matter before the Kaimacam. He
immediately called at the Castle, and read a translation of our letter
to the Kaimacam, who, as we had conjectured, readily promised to pardon
the tribe. We soon after received a letter from the Kaimacam himself,
informing us that, in consequence of our intercession, he had been
pleased to forgive the Haasa the very serious crime of which they had
been guilty, on condition of their good behaviour and prompt payment of
the Miri in future.
This letter reached us soon after the arrival of the _Assurance_, when
Mr. De Fremeaux was with us on a visit from Derna. Immediately after its
receipt, we summoned the sheikhs to a meeting, at which Mr. De Fremeaux
read and explained the letter of the Kaimacam. Highly delighted with the
happy termination of their difficulties, they were profuse in their
expressions of thanks, and said that they and their tribe were now our
servants for ever.
Immediately after our return from Ptolemais, and before the above
disturbances took place, we went to pay a visit to the Mudir at Ghegheb,
where we also found Bou Bakr and some of his sons. Although nearly
seventy years of age, he seemed as strong and active as a man of thirty.
It is said that although Cyrene was the site selected for the existing
castle, Bou Bakr, who was Mudir at the time of its erection, had it
built, for obvious reasons, in the territory of his own tribe at
Ghegheb. It is exactly similar in construction to the Castle of Merdj,
and stands on a slight eminence in a sheltered position surrounded by
hills. The country in the neighbourhood is bare and desolate; the only
recommendation of the site being an abundant spring of excellent water,
which issues from the rock under the southern wall of the Castle. About
seven miles and a half from Cyrene, we passed a most remarkable place,
called by the Arabs Safsaf, where there are a number of reservoirs
similar to those at Ptolemais, but on a much larger scale. One of them,
which is cut in the rock and lined with cement, is about sixty yards in
length, and is still in very perfect condition. It is covered with a
continuous semicircular arch, which springs from near the ground-line.
Although in a great measure filled up, it contained a large quantity of
water when we saw it. These cisterns appear to have been built by the
Romans for the supply of Cyrene, as an aqueduct may be traced a great
part of the way to the large reservoirs, also Roman, at the south-east
corner of the city. Safsaf was evidently chosen as the site of the
waterworks of Cyrene on account of its position, which is rather above
the level of the city, and is surrounded by higher ground, which could
be easily drained into the reservoirs. The distance is considerable; but
there is no other point nearer Cyrene so well adapted for the purpose.
[Illustration: Pl. 55.
CYRENE. PLAN OF THE LARGE TEMPLE AT THE N.E. END OF THE CITY NEAR THE
STADIUM. BY COMMANDER E. A. PORCHER R.N.
_Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen_]
CHAPTER XI.
IT will be remembered that while the _Assurance_ was with us, seven
blacks, sent by Mr. Aquilina, arrived from Benghazi, and assisted in the
transport of the statues. With these men we recommenced work on the 9th
of June, by beginning the excavation of the large temple in the eastern
part of the city, near the Stadium. The site seemed very promising, both
on account of the extent and the apparently undisturbed state of the
remains of the building. In fact, we had been prevented solely by want
of workmen from digging here long before, as the temple was by far the
largest, if not the most important, in Cyrene. We began as usual at the
western end of the building, where we soon came to a large pedestal, 20
feet square, and 10 feet in height above the pavement. The total length
of the temple, which consisted of _Pronaos_, _Cella_, and _Posticum_,
was 169½ feet, by 58 feet in breadth. The interior of the _Cella_, 108
feet in length, was ornamented on each side with a marble colonnade of
the Corinthian order. The bases of most of the columns were found _in
situ_ on square pedestals, projecting from the lateral walls. They were
two feet in diameter, with an intercolumniation of seven feet. The wall
of the _Cella_ was built of stones of immense size, the surface of some
of them measuring upwards of 40 square feet. Enough of the wall was left
to show the manner in which it was built. The courses were alternately
of long blocks of stone, about a foot deep, and equal in breadth to the
thickness of the wall, and of large slabs laid on edge, back to back;
care being taken to have the work well bonded. The marble _peribolus_
wall of the Mausoleum at Halicarnassus was built in an exactly similar
manner, strength being, in both cases, sacrificed to appearance.
The exterior colonnade consisted altogether of forty-six columns; viz.
seventeen on the sides and eight on the ends or fronts of the building.
As in all the temples of Cyrene, the entrance was in the eastern front.
The order was Doric, and the stone was the same as that of the temples
of Bacchus and Apollo. As nearly as we could make out, the columns,
which were fluted, were six feet in diameter at the base; but as they
were much worn away, it was impossible to measure them very exactly.
They had all fallen outwards, and many of the capitals, measuring nine
feet in diameter, were to be seen cropping out above the surface of the
ground. The architraves and beams must have been of great size, as the
columns were 14 feet apart centre from centre, and 18 feet from the face
of the wall of the _Cella_. The building stood within two degrees of due
east and west.
In the course of our excavations we came upon innumerable fragments of
sculpture, evidently of excellent style; but nothing was found in the
least degree perfect. Amongst them we found, in the middle of the
_Cella_, between the pillars, a male head in white marble, much
mutilated, being nearly cracked in two and the nose broken off. It had
been well executed, and the lips still retained a bright light-red
colour. This head is rather larger than life. Even the marble columns of
the interior of the _Cella_ were broken in small pieces, which could not
have been the result of natural causes. Although the appearance of the
remains clearly showed that the temple had been wantonly destroyed by
the hand of man, the discovery of fragments of good style induced us to
continue the excavation of the building.
In the _Pronaos_, and close to the entrance, we found a block of marble
measuring 4′ 6″ × 2′ 1″ × 1′, with the inscription given in Plates 78,
79, No. 6, and on the opposite side of the _Pronaos_, a smaller slab,
measuring 1′ 4″ × 1′ 3″ × 3″, with the inscription in two columns given
in Plate 79, No 7. Both these contain lists of names, probably of
persons contributing to some public subscription.
We also found fragments of an inscribed architrave of sandstone, and
some pieces of copper and iron; among which may be mentioned a circular
piece of iron, half an inch in thickness, with two handles like a small
tub without a bottom. It was 8½ inches in diameter, and 6½ inches in
height.
As there was no hope of finding anything undestroyed, we abandoned the
building, after spending seven weeks in its excavation, the only part
left unfinished being the centre of the _Cella_, which was covered with
enormous blocks from the side walls. Outside the _Cella_, we only dug
sufficiently far to discover the exact positions of the columns of the
peristyle.
On the 17th of June, only nine days after the departure of the
_Assurance_, we were most agreeably surprised by the unexpected
appearance at our tomb of a large party of naval officers, consisting of
Captain Jones and some of the officers of H.M.S. _Scourge_. They were
the bearers of a telegram and a letter from Mr. Panizzi, by which we
were informed that the trustees of the British Museum had voted us a
further sum of £500, and had sent out a carpenter, Mr. Wm. Dennison, to
assist in packing the statues, &c. He arrived in the _Scourge_, and
remained with us till our departure from the country. Although there was
little carpenter’s work to be done till near the close of the
expedition, he was of great service in superintending the workmen.
The _Scourge_ had anchored off Marsa Sousah early in the morning, when
Captain Jones and the rest of the party immediately started for Cyrene,
guided by the directions given them by the officers of the _Assurance_.
They lost their way, however, in climbing the Augubah, and did not reach
Cyrene till nearly sunset, much fatigued by their long day’s wandering
under a burning sun.
The following day, the 18th of June, being the anniversary of the birth
of the Prophet, there was a great gathering of the Arabs on the upper
plateau near Cyrene to celebrate the festival of the _Melood_, which we
attended as spectators by the invitation of the sheikhs. When the men
were all assembled, they dismounted and ranged themselves in a line of
two ranks, with their horses picketed in the rear. A long prayer was
then repeated aloud by the whole line, who made the usual prostrations
together, like a regiment at drill. Prayers over, they remounted their
horses, and the tournament began. An open level space being chosen,
those about to engage in the games placed themselves in two irregular
lines, facing each other, about 150 yards apart, the mere spectators
like ourselves remaining at the sides. The object of the game, or rather
exercise, is to show the skill of the rider in handling his weapons and
directing his horse when at full gallop. A man, for instance, breaks out
from one of the lines, and canters carelessly toward the other.
Presently another horseman dashes after him in pursuit, and they tear
along, _ventre à terre_, till they come close up to the opposite line,
when they unsling their guns, aim, and fire at each other, at the same
moment wheeling sharply to the right-about to avoid running into the
line in front. At other times a number of men gallop straight up to the
opposite line, deliver their fire, and wheel when at full speed, within
a yard or two of the stationary line. Sometimes two horsemen engage in a
sort of running duel, each man riding at full speed, and using pistols,
blunderbuss, gun, and bayonet. Collisions at the wheeling-point were not
unfrequent; and as the horses were always going at a great pace, it was
wonderful that no one was killed. Some of the men were bruised and their
horses lamed, and one man had several ribs broken. In consequence of the
general introduction of firearms, this kind of amusement has taken the
place of the older lance exercise and the throwing of the jereed.
The _Scourge_ being about to proceed to Alexandria to assist in laying
the Malta telegraph cable, Captain Jones kindly offered to give us a
passage to Derna if we wished to revisit that place. As we were in want
of a number of things, we were glad to avail ourselves of the
opportunity of going. We accordingly left Cyrene with Captain Jones and
the other officers on the afternoon of the 18th, and got on board the
same night. We started the following morning at daybreak, and anchored
off Derna late in the afternoon, when we went ashore, and occupied our
old quarters at Mr. De Fremeaux’s house, the _Scourge_ leaving soon
after for Alexandria. Captain Jones had previously most kindly allowed
us to take from the ship everything likely to prove useful to us. We
remained at Derna two days, buying articles in the bazaar, and waiting
for our horses and camels, which we had sent by land from Cyrene. When
these had been somewhat rested after their arrival, we started on our
return journey, and by travelling all night, with only an hour or two’s
halt, reached Cyrene within twenty hours. Among other things which we
brought from Derna were some thin deals, with which we furnished our
tomb with a table, shelves, &c.
By this time our money was beginning to run short, and we hardly knew
how we were to get a fresh supply. The trustees of the British Museum
having given us authority to draw bills on them to the amount of £500,
we were anxious, if possible, to get more workmen, and carry on our
excavations on a larger scale during the remaining months of summer. As
writing was apt to cause delay, I determined to go to Benghazi myself
for the purpose of getting both money and men. I started on the
afternoon of the 6th of July, accompanied by a single mounted Arab; and
as time was now an object of great importance, I took no camels, and
consequently had neither water nor baggage of any kind. By halting only
a few hours each night, I reached Merdj at mid-day on the 8th, and left
the same evening for Benghazi. Travelling all night and all next day, we
arrived at Benghazi shortly after sunset on the 9th; thus accomplishing
the whole journey of 160 miles in three days, and without water after
leaving Merdj on the evening of the 8th. It was, of course, most
fatiguing work both for man and horse, especially during the day, when
the heat of the sun and the want of water were together almost
intolerable.
As it would have been unsafe to carry a sum of money with me, Mr.
Aquilina gave me two orders, one on Mr. De Fremeaux, at Derna, and the
other on our friend Mohammed El Adouly, from both of whom we were to
draw the amount in instalments as we required it. This proved, as was to
be expected, a most convenient arrangement, although a Bedouin camp
seemed an odd place for negotiating bills and keeping a banker’s
account.
I had no difficulty in getting as many workmen as I wanted. The morning
after my arrival Mr. Aquilina sent for the Sheikh Il Abid, or chief of
the negroes, and told him that I wanted twenty good strong blacks to go
to Cyrene, on the terms of five Turkish piastres (10_d._) a day and food
for each man. These wages were very high for the country; but we had
found it impossible to keep men at Cyrene, at such a distance from their
wives and families, except by paying them so highly that they did not
like to give up the work; and it was always difficult to get workmen to
supply the places of those who left, as the blacks were afraid to come
to Cyrene by themselves, on account of the danger of being seized and
re-enslaved by the Arabs on the way. It was therefore advisable to pay
such wages as would not only induce the workmen to remain with us after
they came, but, by making dismissal from our service a severe
punishment, would give us the means of enforcing obedience.
At an appointed hour, the Sheikh appeared at the Consulate with fifty or
sixty men, all eager to be engaged; but as it would have been difficult
to feed such a number, and as we had only a very limited supply of
tools, I at first selected only twenty. Before leaving Benghazi,
however, I was induced to take eight more, which, with the seven we
already had at Cyrene, made up our number to thirty-five.
Soon after my arrival at Benghazi, I was visited by the Kaimacam in
state, attended by the “heads of departments;” viz. the Colonel
commanding the troops, the Cadi or Judge, the Collector of customs, and
the Sheikh El Beléd, or chief of the town. Suliman Captan and some of
the principal Arab inhabitants also called; so that I was obliged to
devote an entire day to returning the visits. I found that the arrival
and stay of the _Assurance_ had become magnified by report into a much
more formidable affair than it was. The Kaimacam told me that he had
been officially informed that an English fleet had come to Marsa Sousah
and disembarked several thousand soldiers, who were to be employed in
occupying the country; and that the laying of the telegraph was only a
part of a general scheme of conquest. I had some difficulty in
disabusing his mind of the impression that we had some ulterior object
in view in the works we were carrying on at Cyrene. Our statues and
waggons, according to the general belief, were artillery; our road to
the coast, a military one for the use of the army of occupation; and our
excavations, forts and batteries.
There was, of course, considerable delay in getting fairly started on
the journey from Benghazi with such a number of blacks. By Mr.
Aquilina’s advice I gave every man a small advance of pay, to enable him
to get his own provisions for the journey; thereby saving me the trouble
of providing for such a number. As there were no water-skins for sale in
the bazaar, I had to send all over the town to get a sufficient number,
and the endless debates with camel-drivers had to be undergone as usual.
At last, everything being ready and the men collected, we started on the
afternoon of the 12th, and after filling the water-skins at the Garden
of Osman, halted for the night near the foot of the Augubah, about six
hours’ distance from Benghazi. Although the blacks knew there was no
more water to be got till we reached Merdj, it required the greatest
vigilance to keep them from drinking the whole of the contents of the
girbehs before the morning. About mid-day on the 14th we arrived at
Merdj, where I was very sorry to find our good friend Hadji Achmet Bin
’l Agha suffering from a violent attack of fever. Long before our
arrival, the blacks, with their usual improvidence, had eaten all the
food they had provided for the whole journey, and I was obliged to look
out for a fresh supply. There was no bread to be had; but I fortunately
got a sufficient quantity of dates to serve for the remainder of the
distance.
After halting a day at Merdj, we resumed our journey at daybreak on the
16th. Shortly after passing the Libiar Il Gharib in the afternoon, I
happened to be riding by myself through a wood about a mile ahead of the
caravan, when my attention was attracted by about a dozen Arabs seated
under a tree near the path, with their horses standing beside them. They
looked rather suspicious, and commenced talking rapidly to each other as
I came up; but as this was nothing unusual, I rode on, thinking that
they were probably a travelling party halted for a rest. In a few
minutes, however, I heard a loud shouting and screaming in the rear, and
on hastening back to see what was the matter, I saw the negroes running
in all directions, and in such a state of terror that it was some time
before I could make out what had happened. I finally learned that the
Arabs whom I had passed in the wood, had charged into the straggling
caravan, and seized one of the negroes. While some of them were binding
him on the back of a horse, the others formed a circle round him with
their bayonets at the “charge,” and threatened to shoot any one that
interfered. When their prisoner was secured, they rode off with him into
the wood, and before I came up they had all disappeared. In the course
of the evening I found out with some difficulty who the perpetrators of
the outrage were; but although I at once wrote to Benghazi, nothing was
ever done in the matter, the Kaimacam being unwilling, or more probably
unable, to apprehend the offenders.
Next day we passed Gusr Biligadem, and leaving the caravan, halted near
the Zauyah El Beidah: I rode on the same night to Cyrene. The blacks
arrived the following day, and told me that the Achwani of the Zauyah
had refused to give them even a drop of water, because they were in the
service of “Christian dogs.”
By the time I reached Cyrene, the excavation of the large temple near
the Stadium was almost finished, and the smaller temple near it had just
been commenced. Before we had dug far, we found unmistakeable proofs
that the latter building, like the former, had been purposely destroyed.
It was built on a small rocky eminence which commands one of the finest
views to be had within the walls of the city. The _Ædes_, consisting of
_Cella_ and _Pronaos_, occupied the summit, the surrounding rock being
cut in terraces, so that the peristyle was on a lower level than the
_Ædes_. Like other temples, it stood nearly east and west. In the
western end of the _Cella_ were two courses of a pedestal measuring 26
feet by 15, a little to the east of which the floor of the _Cella_ sank
two feet. The eastern front had so entirely disappeared, that a
satisfactory plan of the entrance could not be made, and the positions
of the columns marked on the Plan are partly conjectural. The columns
themselves, many fragments of which were lying around the temple, were
deeply fluted, and of the Doric order, and measured 4 feet 5 inches in
diameter. In the eastern or lower part of the _Cella_ we discovered a
few fragments of sculpture of very fine style, but so small and so few
in number, as to make us only sorry that there were no more. The most
perfect of these fragments were two small marble statuettes, probably of
Venus and the nymph Cyrene, which have been photographed together (Plate
67); and perhaps the most remarkable were three or four parts of a
colossal male head now put together in the British Museum. As it
measures 1 foot 8 inches in height, the statue to which it belonged must
have been 11 or 12 feet high; but not another fragment of it was to be
seen.
[Illustration: Pl. 56.
CYRENE. PLAN OF THE SMALLER TEMPLE NEAR THE STADIUM. BY COMMANDER E. A.
PORCHER R.N.
_Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen_]
Shortly before this time, we had discovered a statue of Minerva, and
another female dressed statue, rather larger than life, at the place
marked on the Plan “Statue of Minerva.” Both statues were but little
injured, so that we hoped, by digging some distance round the place, to
find the heads. We therefore employed more than half our force in
excavating at this place and at the other points near it marked on the
Plan; but we discovered nothing. The removal of the two statues to our
tomb was the first occasion on which we made use of the stone-trucks
brought by the _Assurance_. In the course of the excavations, we found
several _frusta_ of fluted marble columns, which no doubt formed part of
the building to which the statues belonged. The small building between
the statue of Minerva and the wall of the citadel was probably a
monument.
On the 31st of July we returned with our whole force to the Temple of
Apollo and its immediate neighbourhood. As already mentioned, it was
only now that we were able to complete the excavation of that building.
Besides the sculptures found in the Temple itself, we discovered on its
northern and eastern sides altogether four statues, four statuettes,
fourteen heads of different sizes, and seven inscriptions. A seated
figure, rather larger than life, which was lying on the surface, was
noticed by Beechey, who thought it was Diana; but which we made out to
be Archippe, of the family of the Ptolemaic dynasty, from the following
inscription on the base:—
ΑΡΧΙΠΠΑΝΠΤΟΛΕΜΑΙΟΥ
ΕΥΙΝΙΕΡΙΤΕΥΟΥΣΑΝΠΤΟΛΕ.
It was in a very imperfect state of preservation, owing to its long
exposure on the surface of the ground.
Near it we found what appeared to be a copy of itself on a small scale,
so much alike in every respect were the two figures. The girdle
encircling the waist was distinctly striped on both edges with bright
vermilion. The most remarkable of the large statues found at this place
was a colossal female figure, seven feet in height, in very good
condition; most probably a portrait of one of the queens of Egypt
(Photograph Plate 68). The head was separate, and the body broken in
two, the lower half of which was found in an upright position, and the
upper half lying across it, with the head on the top. Another statue,
life-size, discovered here, was a draped figure, the portrait of an old
man; and among the smaller statues may be mentioned a nude figure of
Bacchus, 3 feet 7 inches in height.
At the western end of the platform, near the large theatre, we excavated
the small building marked on the Plan, in which we found a statuette and
some small marble heads. We also examined the ruins toward the eastern
end of the platform, but found no traces of sculpture in any of them.
We finished the above excavations near the Temple of Apollo on the 14th
of August, after which we tried nine separate buildings in different
parts of the city without success. On the 23rd we commenced the
excavation of the building to the westward of the Temple of Bacchus,
marked “Palace” on the Map. Our attention was attracted to this place by
the torso of a Roman emperor in armour, which had been seen forty years
before by Beechey, who was of opinion that it was the statue of one of
the Ptolemies. Considering the number of years it must have lain exposed
on the surface of the ground, the marble was in a wonderfully good state
of preservation. After removing it to our tomb, we commenced digging in
the immediate neighbourhood of the spot in which it was found. In the
course of our excavations we found traces of a large building consisting
of several rooms, some of which had their walls and floors veneered with
thin slabs of marble. The division of the building into separate rooms,
its central and prominent position in the city, and the nature of the
sculpture we discovered in it, led us to believe that it had most
probably been the palace of the Roman governor. Lying on the floor about
four feet below the surface, we found a large female draped statue in
very good condition, measuring 5 feet 11 inches in height, but without
the head, which we failed to discover. We also found busts, life-size,
of Antoninus Pius and another Roman emperor, quite uninjured (Photograph
Plates 69 and 70); a female bust well preserved, three heads, and three
inscriptions. These sculptures, as they were found, were all thickly
coated with an incrustation of sand and lime, which has been most
successfully removed in the British Museum by frequently steeping them
in warm water.
From the 3rd of September little excavation was done for a fortnight,
most of our workmen being employed in improving and repairing the road
to Marsa Sousah, preparatory to the removal of the statues when a vessel
should arrive. The point that particularly required our attention was
the Augubah, near the shore, which had caused so much trouble and delay
when the _Assurance_ was with us. On that occasion, we had discovered
the track of the ancient road winding round the faces of the hills at a
comparatively easy slope; and we now resolved to make it, if possible,
practicable for the waggons. In many parts it was almost quite hidden
with brushwood, and in others it had totally disappeared, owing to the
slip of its embankment or retaining-wall, caused by the rush of water
down the steep face of the hill during the heavy rains in winter. By
clearing away the brushwood, restoring cuttings and embankments, and in
some places making an entirely new section, we succeeded in forming a
road by which it was possible to take the waggons up and down the
mountain without resorting to the laborious and tedious expedients which
we had formerly been obliged to adopt. We also cleared and improved our
old road the whole way from Cyrene.
Meantime, a few men had been employed digging at the site marked “Temple
of Venus,” a little to the south-west of the Temple of Bacchus. When the
road to Marsa Sousah was finished, we employed all the workmen at this
building, the excavation of which we had barely finished when H.M.S.
_Melpomene_ arrived on the 26th of September. Of the temple itself
nothing but the foundations remained, although it yielded a large amount
of sculpture.
The _Ædes_, which consisted of _Cella_ and _Pronaos_, was 84 feet in
length by 35 feet in breadth. No trace of a peristyle could be found.
The floor of the western half of the _Cella_ was on a higher level than
that of the rest of the building, access being had to it by flights of
steps in front and at the sides, as shown in the Plan and Section. At
the corners of the steps were two circular pedestals, on the northern of
which faint traces of an inscription could be seen, although it was too
much worn away to be deciphered. In the eastern part of the _Cella_ were
six large pedestals of sandstone _in situ_, on which, in all
probability, stood the statues which we found near them. As the floor of
the Temple was covered with only three or four feet of soil, we
completed the excavation of the whole building in little more than a
week. We found statues and other pieces of sculpture in every part of
it, but did not discover either the principal statue or any inscription
by which the Temple could certainly be identified. Our reason for
calling it the “Temple of Venus,” was that we found in it altogether
statues or statuettes of that goddess. One of these, a small nude figure
of Venus Euploia, is remarkably graceful (Photograph Plate 71). In some
of the other figures she is represented half-draped, with Cupid by her
side, seated on a dolphin (Photograph Plate 72). Three of the statues
discovered in this temple were life-size, or rather larger. One of them
is the figure of a female, perhaps a queen, with a very peculiar head-
dress (Photograph Plate 73), and the two others, which may be called a
_pair_ of statues, represent hunters equipped for the chase. The smaller
statues, besides those of Venus, were, one of Pan, 3 feet 11 inches in
height, and a draped one, 4 feet 8 inches in height, of Apollo or
Aristæus resting on a rod encircled by the coils of a serpent. Both of
these figures were all but perfect, and that of Pan still retained much
of its original colouring. We also discovered three female busts in very
perfect condition, two of which, of life-size, had curious high head-
dresses, somewhat Elizabethan in appearance (Photograph Plate 74). The
other, which is considerably smaller, is of a peculiarly transparent
marble resembling alabaster. Some heads were also found besides those
belonging to the statues and statuettes; among which may be mentioned a
perfect one of Minerva, smaller than the similar head found in the
Temple of Apollo, and a small marble head of Perseus (Photograph Plate
75). A slab of marble was also found, containing in relief a
representation of Libya crowning with laurel the nymph Cyrene, who is in
the act of strangling a lion (Photograph Plate 76). Beneath the group,
and on the same slab, are four lines of inscription which explain the
allegorical myth which forms the subject of the sculpture.
[Illustration: Pl. 57.
CYRENE. PLAN OF A TEMPLE TO THE S.W. OF THE TEMPLE OF BACCHUS. BY
COMMANDER E. A. PORCHER R.N.
Day & Son, Lith. to the Queen]
In the Temple of Venus we discovered altogether six statues of various
sizes, twenty-nine small statuettes, three busts, twenty-six separate
heads, including those which belonged to the statues and statuettes, one
bas-relief, and three inscriptions. About ten yards to the eastward of
the Temple we saw the two pedestals containing the inscriptions copied
by Beechey.
CHAPTER XII.
OWING to the want of means of communication with England, we had not yet
(September) received answers to our letters sent home by the _Assurance_
in June, so that we were quite uncertain about the arrival of a ship. In
writing to Lord Russell and Mr. Panizzi, we had recommended that a much
larger vessel than the _Assurance_ should be sent, as it was of
importance to save time by having a working party on shore large enough
to take three waggons at a time. In the case of the _Assurance_ we had
found that thirty men, which was the largest number that could be
spared, were about the proper force for a single waggon. Three waggons
would therefore require ninety men, a number as large as we could safely
undertake to supply with the necessary water, camels, &c.
We had also recommended that the vessel sent should arrive at Marsa
Sousah before the middle of September, to insure our having time enough
for the transport and embarkation of whatever statues we might find,
before the fine summer weather should break up. As the very lightest
wind from the north caused a heavy surf all along the beach, it was
impossible to carry on boat operations except in perfectly calm weather.
Day after day, however, passed without any word of the arrival of the
vessel, and we began to contemplate our continued stay in the country
for another winter, and to consider how we might best occupy the time.
As we had already dug every promising spot at Cyrene not occupied by the
crops of the Arabs, we purposed going to Benghazi to dig in the ancient
cemetery there, previously burying all the marbles we could not carry
with us, to protect them from being destroyed by the Bedouins. If the
vessel came in the following year, they could be exhumed with little
difficulty.
Since the end of August I had been confined to the tomb, and most of the
time to bed, by a severe attack of fever, caused, most probably, by
fatigue and exposure at night during the journey to Benghazi in July.
With one of our party thus laid up on the “sick list,” and with a
prospect every day more certain of a further residence of eight months
in the country, we looked with some anxiety for the expected ship. As
usual on such occasions, the number of false alarms was so great that we
at last paid little attention to them. Our Maltese servants, quite
beside themselves with excitement at the chance of soon returning to
Malta—their “Fiore del mondo,”—stood gazing at the sea from morning to
night, and raised a shout of joy whenever they detected the slightest
speck on the distant horizon.
Their hopes were at last realized on the 26th of September, by the
appearance of a large frigate standing in towards Marsa Sousah, which
proved to be H.M.S. _Melpomene_, Captain Ewart, from whom we soon after
received a note announcing his arrival. As I was still unable to leave
the tomb, Porcher went down to the ship by himself early next morning,
to make the necessary arrangements with Captain Ewart, and to accompany
the working party, while I remained to look after the packing and other
affairs at Cyrene. Our friend Mohammed El Adouly had, unfortunately for
us, gone to Benghazi; so that we had not the benefit of his assistance,
as on the former occasion. The chances of difficulties and
misunderstandings were, moreover, much increased by the presence of a
large number of Arabs from the southward, who had lately come to water
their flocks till winter at the springs in the neighbourhood of Cyrene.
Having no occupation at this season of the year, they wandered about
perfectly idle, and therefore in readiness for any mischief. Even before
the arrival of the _Melpomene_, they had subjected us to considerable
annoyance, and were becoming daily more and more unfriendly in their
general demeanour; and there was little doubt that the large addition to
our numbers brought by the _Melpomene_ would proportionately add to
their hatred of the “dogs of Nazarenes,” as we were not too courteously
called. There were, consequently, more than the usual difficulties with
the numerous camel-drivers we required, who adopted a peculiarly
insolent tone in dealing with us. In the course of the subsequent
operations, they frequently refused to take any loads but such as they
themselves selected, and sometimes struck work altogether, thereby
causing us a vast amount of unnecessary trouble.
Owing to the excellent arrangements made by Captain Ewart while on the
passage from Malta, everything was ready for beginning the work
immediately after the arrival of the ship. The working party had already
been told off and thoroughly equipped and organized. The shafts of the
waggons had been taken off and long capstan bars substituted, by which
the guiding or steering was greatly facilitated—a point of some
importance, as it was only by means of such powerful levers that the
heavy waggons could be guided with ease and safety over the rough and
stony roads. The drag-ropes, too, were fitted with canvas straps to pass
over the men’s shoulders, by means of which the dragging was done much
more easily than by hand.
All the plank and other stores required for packing the statues were
landed immediately after the arrival of the ship, and sent up to Cyrene
as rapidly as we could get camels to carry them. Ten carpenters and a
guard of ten marines under the command of Lieutenant Saunders, R.M.,
came up to Cyrene the same day, and the work of making cases and packing
was begun at once under the superintendence of Mr. Dennison. A working
party of ninety men, fully equipped with tents, water-breakers,
provisions, &c., was then disembarked under the command of Lieutenant
Carter, R.N., ten camels with their drivers being told off to attend to
their wants. The waggons, three in number, were the artillery platform
waggons of the service, the same as those used by us on the former
occasion. Each waggon had its own “crew” of thirty men, under the
immediate command of one of the three midshipmen attached to the
party,—Messrs. Jackson, Cane, and Wade.
The ship was anchored about two miles to the westward of Marsa Sousah,
directly opposite our new road over the Augubah, in nearly the same
position as the _Assurance_ had taken up for the embarkation of the
statues in June. As communication with the shore was very liable to be
interrupted by the heavy surf on the beach, Captain Ewart caused a depôt
of provisions and fresh water to be established on land under the
protection of a guard. From this depôt, which was replenished from time
to time as the state of the weather permitted, the working party could
at all times draw its supplies, and the cases of sculpture brought down
from Cyrene could be safely left in charge of the guard, until a
favourable opportunity occurred for taking them on board. This
arrangement was the more necessary as we knew that the transport of the
objects too heavy to be carried by camels would require three if not
four trips of the waggons. Moreover, at so late a season of the year, a
continuance of fine weather could not be reckoned upon, and the ship
herself might not improbably be obliged by an equinoctial gale to put
out to sea.
Every precaution being thus taken to insure the success of the
operations, the working party started from the depôt with the waggons on
the morning of the 28th. Our new road proved quite practicable, and the
party reached the summit of the Augubah and encamped there the same
night. They arrived at Cyrene the following day, by which time the
carpenters had a sufficient number of statues packed to load all the
waggons. The 30th was occupied in securing the cases on the waggons, and
on the 1st of October the party started for the shore. The descent of
the Augubah was accomplished without accident, and the cases were safely
deposited at the depôt on the evening of the 2nd. Two other trips were
afterwards made with equal success, although not without serious
apprehension on our part of a violent interruption by a tribe of hostile
Bedouins.
Ever since the arrival of the marines and carpenters at Cyrene, scores
of “ugly-looking” Arabs kept prowling about our tomb with the evident
design of picking a quarrel with us. Occasion for doing so was likely to
occur at any moment, and especially when we absolutely refused to comply
with some extravagant demands on the part of the camel-drivers. An open
quarrel, however, was fortunately avoided until the first arrival of the
large waggon party.
The sailors, who were then encamped on the hill opposite our tomb, were
in the habit of washing and bathing at the Fountain of Apollo, a
practice at which the Arabs became greatly enraged. One evening, a
little before sunset, as we were sitting down to dinner, we suddenly
heard a few shots fired, and immediately afterwards, the loud screeching
by which the Arabs were wont to call each other to an armed gathering.
Numbers soon answered to the cry, and came pouring into the Wady from
all directions. On inquiring into the cause of the disturbance, we
learned that some sailors and marines had been bathing as usual at the
fountain, when a number of Arabs, annoyed at what they thought their
indecency, began pelting them with stones. A marine had thereupon loaded
his rifle with blank cartridge, and fired in the direction of the Arabs,
thinking thereby to frighten them away. His foolish act had, as might
have been expected, a totally different result. In less than an hour,
the Wady in front of our tomb was swarming with armed men. As we had in
this instance been the aggressors, we at once sent Amor for the sheikhs
of the collected force, and explained to them that we quite disclaimed
the act of the marine, whose rashness, however, was somewhat excused by
the previous conduct of the Arabs. The sheikhs, who seemed peaceably
disposed, replied that the whole disturbance had been caused by our men
occupying the fountain all day, and preventing the Arab women from
coming to fill their waterskins. As there was some truth in this, we
promised that in future the men should be allowed to use the fountain
only at particular times; and we requested the sheikhs to come to us, if
at any time they had cause of complaint, and not to speak to our men,
who knew nothing of their language. The Arabs, only partly pacified by
our assurances, remained where they were all night, and spent great part
of the following morning in firing at marks close to our tomb, for the
purpose of making an imposing show of their power to treat us as they
pleased.
This disturbance was hardly settled when a certain Sheikh Said ’M Rubbut
made his appearance at the head of his tribe, and demanded a large sum
of money, under the pretence of harbour dues, or something of the sort.
On our refusing to pay it, he went off in great wrath, vowing vengeance
on our whole party. The following day, he returned with a similar
demand, but this time for the much smaller sum of 200 piastres (18_s._).
On our again refusing to acknowledge his right to any sum, however
small, he lowered his tone considerably, and said that, having no wish
to quarrel with us, he would forego his claim, but begged two or three
bullock-skins which were of little or no value to us. To a request in
this form we willingly acceded, as we were anxious at all hazards to
keep the peace until the marbles were safely taken to the beach. By this
time the waggons were on their way to the depôt on the shore, after
their second trip to Cyrene.
The day after the departure of the waggon party, Sheikh Said again paid
a visit to our tomb, and told me that he was not satisfied with the
skins, and that he would not allow the waggons to pass, unless I paid
him a large _bakshish_ besides. Seeing that his object was simply to
levy “black mail,” and that yielding in any way to his demands would
only encourage him to make further exactions, I refused to give him
anything, and ordered him to leave the tomb. With the threat that none
of us should leave the country alive, he went away, and encamped in the
lower plateau, near a steep ravine which the waggons had to cross. He
there barricaded the road with trunks and branches of trees, and for two
days prevented any communication between Cyrene and the working party or
the ship.[5] Some of our camels on their way from the depôt, laden with
planks, were seized and detained. Our retreat from Cyrene was
effectually cut off, and we were altogether in rather a helpless state.
In this dilemma, I thought of the sheikhs of the Haasa, whom we had
befriended after the attack of the Castle of Ghegheb, and who had then
expressed their desire to repay us in any way in their power. I
accordingly sent for Husseim and Hadji Hassan, the two head sheikhs of
the tribe, and after reminding them of our interference with the Pacha
on their behalf, told them that they could never have a better
opportunity of proving the sincerity of their gratitude than now, by
ridding us of the presence of Sheikh Said and his followers. I also
assured them, that as we were living in the territory of the Haasa, of
which Sheikh Said’s tribe was a subdivision, they themselves would be
held responsible by the Consul for our safety. They at once promised to
request Sheikh Said to depart peaceably, and if he refused to do so, to
drive him away by force. With some of their subordinate sheikhs, they
immediately went to carry their promise into effect, and returned after
two or three hours with the intelligence that Sheikh Said had gone when
they ordered him, and that the road was therefore quite clear.
[Illustration: PLATE 58.—ENCAMPMENT OF THE PARTY FROM H.M.S. “MELPOMENE”
NEAR THE HEAD OF THE AUGUBAH.]
Although he had thus apparently obeyed the order of the sheikhs, he had
by no means given up the game. Foiled at Cyrene, he merely shifted his
ground, and lay in wait for the waggon party in a wood at the top of the
Augubah, hoping, no doubt, to extract something from them by his
threats. The waggons soon afterwards came up from the shore, and halted
for the night. The tents were no sooner pitched than Sheikh Said and
some of his followers entered the camp, and threatened Porcher and the
whole party with utter destruction if he did not agree to give him a
bakshish. Porcher had not yet heard of our two days’ siege at Cyrene,
but gave him the same answer I had done; viz., a point blank refusal.
The sheikh thereupon left the camp, and collecting all the men of his
tribe, placed them in a large open space at the foot of the Cyrene
range, while he himself came up to our tomb to offer me, as he said, a
last chance. I told him I had already given him an answer, and that if
he wanted to attack us we were quite ready to receive him. On his
departure, I again called upon the head sheikhs for assistance, and they
again obliged him to move off; so that the waggon party reached Cyrene
for the third time without an actual encounter.
The friendly interference of the principal sheikhs of the Haasa had thus
been of great service to us hitherto, by preventing a collision which
must have led to very serious consequences. Had it come to blows or
bloodshed, even the Arabs who were most friendly to us would have been
compelled to take side with their brethren against the Christians. With
thirteen miles of bad road and close cover between Cyrene and the coast,
we must have suffered great loss in fighting our way to the shore
against overwhelming numbers. Such a result had fortunately been
avoided; but we now began to have doubts of the good faith of the
friendly sheikhs, and to suspect that, after all, they might be in
secret league with our enemies. We were led to fear that this was the
case by the pertinacity and confidence shown by Sheikh Said, and by the
fact that Hussein and Hadji Hassan acted in concert with our old foe
Sidi Mustapha, who was loud in his denunciation of Sheikh Said’s acts.
We naturally thought that if the heads of the Haasa and the chief of the
Zauyah were sincere in their professions of friendship, Sheikh Said
would not presume to threaten and annoy us.
Affairs being in this state, we thought it advisable to apply to the
Mudir of Ghegheb for protection, although we had little hope of his
rendering us any really efficient assistance. Our object was rather to
put ourselves in the right, by being able to say that we had appealed to
the only representative of the Government in the country. I was still
too weak to ride as far as Ghegheb, or I should have gone to see the
Mudir before now; but Porcher went immediately after his arrival at
Cyrene with the waggons. The Mudir himself, he found, was absent, and
the Kolaghassi or Major who was acting in his place said that all he
could do was to send two Koralié with letters to Sidi Mustapha and the
sheikhs Hussein and Hadji Hassan.
Finding that no assistance was to be expected from the Mudir, and that
we must rely solely on our own resources for protection, we were anxious
to get everything on board as soon as possible, especially as every
day’s delay seemed only to add to the difficulties of our position. We
therefore determined to make the third trip of the waggons the final
one, although, by doing so, we were obliged to leave behind us the large
statue of Archippe and some of the inscriptions. Future visitors to the
ruins of Cyrene will probably find the statue where we left it, at the
western end of our upper range of tombs, and the inscriptions in a
subterranean chamber almost immediately beneath the same spot.[6]
The 10th and 11th were spent in loading the waggons, packing up our
personal effects, and collecting the necessary number of camels. We made
our preparations as quietly and secretly as possible, in the hope of
giving the slip to Sheikh Said and his friends, by reaching the shore
before he should hear of our departure from Cyrene. Meantime, the road
to the coast was clear, and everything promised a peaceful termination
to our long sojourn among the Bedouins. On the night of the 11th,
however, one of our Arab servants brought us word that Sheikh Said,
having heard of our intended movement, was again in position on the road
with a larger force than ever, determined to fight us if we did not
satisfy his demands.
Early next morning, the marines were paraded under arms, and told off in
two parties to act as advanced and rear guards to the main body with the
waggons and camels. It was some time, however, before everything was
ready for a start. Crowds of Arabs collected round our tomb, clamouring
and struggling with each other for the empty bottles and other articles
which we were to leave behind. At last the camels were loaded, and we
were on the point of beginning our march, when, somewhat to our
astonishment, we saw a number of Arabs coming up the Wady, among whom we
recognized Sheikh Said and our former friends Sheikhs Hussein and Hadji
Hassan. It seemed as if our suspicions of these Haasa sheikhs were,
after all, but too well founded, and that they were now openly
associated with our enemy, in order to share with him the expected
booty.
[Illustration: Pl. 59.
CENTRAL WADY AND SLOPE OF THE EASTERN HILL OF CYRENE
E. A. Porcher, delt., T. Picken, lith.
London. Published July 1st. 1864 by Day & Son, Lithographers to the
Queen &c., Gate Street Lincoln’s Inn Fields.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen]
Such, however, was not the case. Leaving the other Arabs who were with
them, the two sheikhs came up to our tomb and told us that, having
accidentally heard that Sheikh Said was again in arms against us, they
had hurried off during the night to the position taken up by him in the
lower plateau, and, by threatening himself and all his followers with
instant death, had compelled him to come to make his submission to us.
As no blood had actually been shed, they had given him their word that
we should not injure him. On being assured that we would respect the
safe-conduct they had given, they brought up their prisoner, who
forthwith, in the most abject terms, expressed sorrow for his past
offences, and begged to be forgiven. Thus, fortunately, ended an affair
which, but for the gratitude of the powerful tribe we had formerly
befriended, would, in all probability, have resulted in a great loss of
life.
To insure us from further molestation, Sheikhs Hussein and Hadji Hassan
accompanied us to the beach, where we induced them with some difficulty
to intrust themselves to leave _terra firma_, and pay a visit to the
ship. When they came on board, Captain Ewart made them a liberal and
most welcome present of powder, and at their own earnest request I gave
each of them a certificate of good conduct addressed to the English
vice-consuls at Benghazi and Derna.
The waggon party reached the head of the Augubah the same night, and on
the following morning descended to the plain, where they were met by the
ship’s band, who escorted them to the beach. Before evening everything
was safely embarked.
The narrative of the excavations would be incomplete without mentioning
a small dressed statue of a girl found near the central theatre of
Cyrene, by some of the sailors, who spent the two days before our
departure in digging for “images” on their own account. For want of a
more appropriate name, her discoverers gave her that of the ship:
“Melpomene.”
While getting the last of the cases on board, on the afternoon of the
13th, we observed a steamer coming along the shore from the westward,
which was soon made out to be H.M.S. _Medina_, commanded by Captain
Spratt, C.B., who was then engaged in testing and correcting the charts
of the coast between Tripoli and Alexandria. He had previously written
to inform us of his intended visit to Cyrene; but his letter did not
reach us until after the arrival of the _Medina_ herself. Unfortunately
it was now too late to think of going, as Sheikh Said and his followers
were doubtless eager to have revenge for their late humiliation.
Immediately before coming to Marsa Sousah, the _Medina_ had anchored for
a few hours at Sousah Hamema, for the purpose of taking some
observations on shore with the artificial horizon. The party that landed
for this purpose, having crossed by chance the limits of the Zauyah,
were indignantly ordered off by the saintly Achwani, who would not have
hesitated to enforce obedience by firing on the intruders.
The last duty we had to perform before our departure was the
distribution of bakshish among our friends and attendants. Of these,
Amor Bon Abdi Seyat, who had stood by us well during the whole of our
residence in the country, had the greatest claim on our gratitude.
Honesty, in our sense of the word, was a quality of which, in common
with his countrymen, he could form no conception, and to which he,
consequently, had no pretension. But he refrained from actual theft, and
had discernment enough to see that in honesty, that is, in _limited_
peculation, lay his best policy; inasmuch as the periodical bakshish
which he received varied inversely as the amount he gained by illicit
means. In every respect he was probably the best man we could have got
in the country. Naturally quick-witted, active, and courageous, he had
acquired considerable influence over the men of his tribe, which, on
more than one occasion, he exerted with success in our behalf. As a
farewell gift, we gave him our two horses and a large supply of powder.
It was not without regret that we finally left our temporary home at
Cyrene. The beauty of the scenery and the interesting nature of our
occupations had combined to render our residence in the country a most
agreeable one. We had occasionally suffered considerable annoyance and
anxiety; but, on the whole, our relations with the Arabs had been much
more satisfactory than might have been anticipated. Several
considerations, however, now induced us to return to Malta in the
_Melpomene_. As a ship could not approach the coast with safety during
winter, we should have had to remain at Cyrene at least six or seven
months, before another vessel could be sent to visit us; and this period
we were afraid we should not be able to employ to much advantage in the
way of excavation. Immediately after the first rains, the Arabs begin to
sow their crops, which, at Cyrene, cover nearly the whole site of the
ancient city. During the previous winter, we had examined nearly every
promising spot that was left unoccupied. Very little digging, therefore,
could be done until the ground was again clear after the harvest in May,
as the Arabs would on no account allow their crops to be interfered
with. We should, consequently, have been obliged to remain in the
country a whole year, for the chance of finding more sculptures during
the five or six months of the following summer. There was no doubt that
many statues were still to be found; but as we had already excavated all
the prominent sites in the city, in many of which we discovered nothing,
further operations must have been carried on almost at random. For these
and other reasons, we made up our minds to leave Cyrene, and return to
Malta in the _Melpomene_.
At daylight on the morning of the 14th we weighed anchor, and sailed for
Malta. It was well that we had got all the cases of sculpture on board
the day before; for we had hardly left the coast when a breeze sprang up
and rapidly freshened to a gale, which would have made it quite
impossible to communicate with the shore, and would have obliged the
ship herself to put to sea for safety. After a stormy passage of three
days, we reached Malta on the 17th, just in time to correct a report
sent from Benghazi by the new submarine telegraph, to the effect that,
in an attack made upon us by the Arabs of Cyrene, one of us had been
killed and the other wounded.
At Malta the sculptures were transferred to H.M.S. _Supply_, Master
Commander Balliston, in which vessel they were soon afterwards safely
conveyed to England.
CONCLUSION.
BEFORE taking leave of the subject of the Cyrenaica, it will not be out
of place to offer a few remarks upon the future prospects of this
beautiful country.
It may, I think, be safely premised that, so long as it remains in the
hands of its present rulers and occupants, no great change in its
condition is likely to take place, either for the better or the worse.
From what has been already stated in a former chapter, it will be seen
that the present state of the country, and the character and peculiar
habits of its inhabitants are, to a great extent, mutually dependent on
each other. That is to say, the physical condition of the country, owing
to the absence of rivers or any large artificial reservoirs for water,
is not adapted to the requirements of a settled sedentary population,
and therefore tends to confirm the Bedouins in their wandering, and
consequently wild and lawless, habits; while, on the other hand, it is
hardly to be expected that a race of people like the Arabs would exert
themselves in achieving public works for the purpose of making the
country suited for a manner of life which they have been taught from
infancy to hate and despise. As an illustration of this, I may mention
that the road which we made from Cyrene to Marsa Sousah, instead of
being regarded as a benefit to that part of the country, was looked upon
with considerable suspicion as a means of facilitating the movements of
troops sent by the Government.
Nor is this indisposition on the part of the inhabitants likely to be
compensated for by the energy of a government which exists in little
more than the name. Justice is not administered, crime is not punished,
and life and property are wholly unprotected. The collection of tribute
is, in fact, the only function of government performed by the
representatives of the Sultan.
The expediency of forming a colony of Maltese in the Cyrenaica has, we
believe, been sometimes contemplated; but it is evident that, in such a
state of affairs, successful colonization by Europeans would be
impossible. In the first place, a general system of irrigation by means
of reservoirs and cisterns for the collection of the rains in winter,
would have to be created; roads and harbours would also be required to
make the resources of the country available for the purposes of
commerce; works which could only be carried out under the protection of
a powerful government. There is little hope of Turkey ever acquiring the
enlightened energy necessary for such a task, and the example of Algeria
as a French _colony_ is probably not such as to induce any other
European nation to attempt it. It is a remarkable fact that a region
once so prosperous, and even now blessed with a salubrious climate, a
fertile soil, and an excellent geographical position, should have
remained for centuries on the very borders of Europe, not only
undeveloped, but almost unknown. And from the combination of causes
which we have indicated, it seems not improbable that it may remain in
the same condition for many years to come.
APPENDICES.
* * * * *
I.—ON THE SILPHIUM.
IN the foregoing chapters reference has occasionally been made to the
Silphium of Cyrene, the identification of which has given rise to
considerable discussion among modern travellers and botanists.
Della Cella, Beechey, and Pacho agree in the opinion that the Silphium
of the Greeks is identical with a plant growing in abundance at the
present day in the neighbourhood of Cyrene, partly from the description
of it given by Pliny, and the general resemblance of the drawing on the
coins of Cyrene.
[Illustration: PLATE 60.—THAPSIA GARGANICA.]
Dr. Schroff has lately published an article on the subject, which seems
to be the most important hitherto written, and having gone minutely into
the accounts given by Hippocrates and Dioscorides of the properties of
the ancient Silphium, and the experiments made from the plant now
growing there, it is quite evident that they are not the same.
From the following account it will be seen that the present plant, of
which a drawing is shown in Plate 60, is proved to be the _Thapsia
Garganica_, and agrees with the plant well known to the ancients under
the name of _Thapsia_, but has none of the properties of the true
Silphium.
It is called _Drias_ by the Arabs, and abounds at Cyrene and the
immediate vicinity, disappearing altogether about thirty miles to the
westward of it; and we observed it occasionally as far as Derna in the
opposite direction. This plant appears above the ground in the month of
October, when the autumnal rains commence, and is in flower in May, when
it attains the height of 4 feet on the average, occasionally measuring
4¾ feet, and dying down to the ground again in July and August.
The following description of the plant has been kindly translated by
Professor Oliver from the German article of Dr. Schroff.
The question as to the identity or otherwise of _Thapsia Garganica_, now
so abundant about the site of the ancient Cyrene, as well as elsewhere
on Mediterranean shores, with the _Silphium_ of the Greeks, has been
recently very carefully investigated by Dr. C. Schroff.
The results of his inquiry appeared in the “Zeitschrift der K. K.
Gesellschaft der Aerzte” of Vienna, Part I., 1862.[7] They are briefly
these: he finds that the properties, &c., of _Thapsia Garganica_ do not
accord with those attributed by classical writers to their _Silphium_;
on the other hand, they do accord with the properties ascribed by
Theophrastus, Dioscorides, and others to a plant called by them
_Thapsia_. Dr. Schroff therefore rejects the prevalent notion that the
ancient _Silphium_ of Cyrene is represented by _Thapsia Garganica_, now
growing wild on its site, and confidently identifies the latter with the
_Thapsia_ of the Greeks and Romans.[8] He does not attempt to indicate
the present representative of the true _Silphium_.
With regard to the properties of _Thapsia Garganica_, it is stated by
Von Heinzmann (by whom specimens of the drug—the rind of the root—now in
use at Tripoli, obtained from _T. Garganica_, were sent to Europe) that
the fruit is very poisonous to camels, a single fruit (so-called seed)
sufficing to kill a large and powerful camel. The Arabs in travelling
through districts where the _Thapsia_ abounds, at the time when the
fruit is ripe, are accustomed to muzzle their camels to prevent their
feeding upon the plant. The green herbage of the _Thapsia_, however, is
eaten by them without ill effect.
A very high value is ascribed to the rind of the root as an application
to foul wounds or ulcers, whether of man or beast. A portion of the rind
is laid upon or into the sore and it heals forthwith. M. Heinzmann
experimented with the tincture upon bad wounds of different kinds with
“die wunderbarsten Resultate.” When the tincture is applied to the sound
skin, it occasions almost unendurable itching, and gives rise at length
to blisters or pustules, without causing much inflammation. Neither
itching nor burning is felt when the drug is applied to a wound. Six to
eight grains of the powdered rind of the root taken internally are
stated to occasion the following symptoms: giddiness, buzzing in the
ears, confusion of ideas, great feeling of weakness, with tendency to
vomit, and actual vomiting and purging. The most striking symptom,
however, is a long-continued, heavy perspiration. Experiments repeated
in Europe lead to the _Thapsia Garganica_ being classed as a drastic
cathartic, and, to a certain extent, confirm its usefulness as an
external application.
The properties of the plant _Thapsia_, described by Theophrastus,
Dioscorides, and Pliny, agree with those just cited as characteristic of
_Thapsia Garganica_. Dr. Schroff says a comparison of the description
given by the above writers of their _Thapsia_ with the character, both
as to structure and properties, of _T. Garganica_, leaves no doubt as to
their identity.
With regard to the ancient _Silphium_. Our most precise information
respecting it is derived from the Cyrenian coins and the writings of
Theophrastus and Dioscorides. It is referred to by Pliny (with admixture
of error), as well as by many of the more ancient classical writers. The
fresh root, prepared with vinegar, was eaten, and the stem was highly
prized as a delicacy.—(See _Knights_ of Aristophanes.) It was also used
as a spice and condiment. Its application in medicine (the inspissated
juice) is fully detailed by Dioscorides. It was in great repute as an
antidote to poisons and the bite of venomous reptiles, scorpions, mad
dogs, &c.
The older Cyrenian coins bear a representation (according to Dr.
Schroff) of the fruit of the _Silphium_. It is represented as
_obcordate_, with a narrow wing. This does not agree at all with the
form of the fruit of _T. Garganica_, nor can the account given of the
use of the _Silphium_ as a table delicacy and condiment be reconciled
with the active properties of that species.
In conclusion Dr. Schroff says: “If, then, our researches establish
beyond all doubt that the plant now known as _Thapsia Garganica_, L.,
and _Thapsia Silphium_, Viv., is not, as so many travellers and
botanists have asserted, the original Cyrenaic _Silphium_, on the other
hand, the result of this inquiry is not purely negative in reference to
the Flora of the ancients, for we have proved that the plant in question
may be certainly identified with another plant used in ancient medicine,
the _Thapsia_ of the Greeks and Romans.”
This extract clearly establishes the fact that the _Drias_ of the Arabs
is the _Thapsia Garganica_. At the time the Romans took possession of
the country, the Silphium seems to have been grown in large quantities,
and was considered an excellent medicine, and sold for its weight in
silver. The medicinal properties of the gum are described as having the
smell of myrrh, but more mild and agreeable.
It was said by Pliny to have grown not far from the Gardens of the
Hesperides and the Great Syrtis; but, in his time, it had so entirely
disappeared that a single plant was sent as a rare and valuable gift to
the Emperor Nero. This scarcity had been caused by the barbaric races
that overran the country, as well as by the Cyrenians themselves, who
aided in its extirpation in order to free themselves of the enormous tax
which the Romans had laid upon it.
* * * * *
No. II.
DESCRIPTION OF THE SCULPTURES FOUND AT CYRENE.
* * * * *
PLATE 61.—BACCHUS.
_Height 5 feet 9 inches; found in a temple of Bacchus. (See ante, p.
40.)_
The god is represented under his youthful type, holding a bunch of
grapes in his left hand, and with his head encircled with a vine-wreath
and diadem. The right arm, now wanting, appears to have hung down by his
side, as a little below the hip is a projection for the attachment of
the hand. A mantle passes round the lower half of his body and over his
left arm and shoulder. This statue is remarkable for the admirable
preservation of the face. The form has a certain effeminate beauty,
though the style is somewhat mannered and meretricious. The drapery is
carelessly executed, especially at the back. When it was first found,
red colour was very visible in the eyes and wreath round the head.
* * * * *
PLATE 62.—APOLLO CITHARŒDUS.
_Height, inclusive of the plinth, 7 feet 6 inches._
This statue was found, as has been already stated (_ante_, p. 41), in
the Temple of Apollo, and originally stood on a lofty base within the
cella. The god is represented in a musing attitude, as if pausing
between the strains of his music. His left hand, now broken off, must
have played over the strings of his lyre; his right arm has been raised;
the right hand, resting on the crown of his head, has held the
_plectrum_, with which he is about to strike the lyre. On the hair may
be seen a projection where this hand has been attached. The lyre rests
on the trunk of a tree, round which a serpent is twined. A bow and
quiver hang from the tree. The head of the serpent is upturned, as if he
were listening to the music of the god. Red colour may be seen on the
tree and quiver.
This statue is probably a copy from some celebrated original, as two
other nearly similar figures exist, one in the Capitoline Museum at
Rome, the other in the Museo Borbonico at Naples. (_See_ Clarac, _Musée
de Sculpture_, iii. pl. 479, fig. 921B; and _ibid._, pl. 489, fig. 954.)
The countenance has a suave and beautiful expression, and the general
attitude is very harmoniously composed. The body is finely modelled, but
the drapery very inferior to the nude part; the lower limbs seem rather
short and clumsy, but perhaps, if this statue were placed on a higher
base, this want of proportion would be less apparent. This statue when
found was broken into 123 pieces, all of which have been rejoined since
its arrival at the British Museum.
* * * * *
PLATE 63.—THE EMPEROR HADRIAN (?).
_Height 6 feet 7 inches._
This Plate represents a male personage clad in a mantle thrown over his
left shoulder, under which the folds of a _chiton_ are seen on the
breast; on his feet are sandals; the right arm is crossed over the
breast under the mantle, the left hand holds a sprig of laurel; the head
is bound with a pine wreath, and has been inserted into a socket at the
base of the neck. This head is evidently a portrait, and appears to be
intended for the Emperor Hadrian, though the likeness is not a very
strong one. As, however, the statue was found in the Temple of Apollo,
close to a base inscribed with a dedication to Hadrian (see _ante_, p.
42), it may be presumed that it represents that emperor. It is possible
that the head may have been substituted for that which originally
belonged to this statue, as the general character of the drapery would
be rather suitable to a poet or a philosopher than to a Roman emperor.
Both hands have been joined on at the wrist, and were found detached.
The left hand seems not to be made of the same marble as the rest of the
statue, and it is very doubtful whether it belongs to the figure.
The pine-wreath on the head would indicate a victory either in the Great
Isthmia, or in some smaller festival bearing the same name. There does
not, however, seem to be evidence to show the connection of the Emperor
Hadrian with such contests.
* * * * *
PLATE 64.—HEAD OF PALLAS ATHENE.
_Height 1 foot 2 inches._
This head was found near the middle of the _Cella_ in the Temple of
Apollo, near the preceding statue, supposed to represent the Emperor
Hadrian.—(See _ante_, p. 42.) It is in unusually fine preservation, and
from the purity and whiteness of the marble is an attractive object to
the uncritical eye. It is, however, rather coarse and heavy in
execution, and belongs, therefore, probably, to the Roman period.
The helmet, which is of the kind called Corinthian, has had the point of
the nasal broken off. In other respects this head is uninjured.
* * * * *
UNKNOWN MALE HEAD WITH INLAID EYES.
_Life Size._
On Plate 64 is also represented a male head, which is especially
interesting, as an example of polychrome or inlaid sculpture. The crown
of the head is cut away, so as to form a joint, and it is evident that a
helmet or other head-dress has been fitted on to it, doubtless, of a
different coloured marble. The eyes are inserted in hollow sockets. The
whites of the eyes, formed of marble, still remain in these sockets. The
pupils, which have, probably, been made of coloured vitreous pastes,
have fallen out. All round the marble eyes the edge of a thin bronze
plate intervenes between the eye and the upper and lower eyelids; this
edge has probably been serrated so as to indicate by its projection the
upper and lower eyelashes, as is the case with the bronze head, Plate
66.
This head is greatly disfigured by the mutilation of the nose, and by
the want of the eyes and the part above the forehead. What remains is,
however, finely modelled, and is, probably, the work of a Greek artist
of a good period.
* * * * *
PLATE 65.—HEAD OF CNÆUS CORNELIUS LENTULUS MARCELLINUS,
PROPRÆTOR OF CYRENE.
_Life Size._
This head was found in the Temple of Apollo, in the western half of the
_Cella_. With it was found a marble base, on which was graven the
inscription No. 1, recording the dedication of a statue, by the people
of Cyrene, to Cnæus Lentulus Marcellinus, styled here Proprætor, Patron,
and Saviour of Cyrene. (See _ante_, p. 42.)
With this base was found a square pedestal, 10 inches broad and 5 feet
high, which fitted into a square socket in the base, and which had at
the top a deep socket into which the head fitted. This pedestal, which
establishes the connection between the base and the head, was
unfortunately left behind, on the final embarkation of the marbles, on
account of the insufficient means of transport at the command of the
expedition. It has been already noticed that the back of this head is
cut flat, as if to enable it to be placed like a pilaster.
As a specimen of provincial sculpture in the Roman period, this head is
very well worthy of study. It seems singular that a work of art
possessing so much merit should have been united to its pedestal in so
rude and unsightly a manner. It is, however, possible that the head
originally belonged to a statue, and that, after this statue was broken
by an earthquake or other accident, the head was remounted in this
clumsy fashion.
The Cnæus Cornelius Lentulus Marcellinus whose portrait we have here was
the son of P. Cornelius Lentulus Marcellinus, of the illustrious family
of Marcelli, and a man of some note in the latter years of the Republic.
While yet a young man he supported the cause of the Sicilians against
Verres, B.C. 70. He held the office of Prætor, B.C. 59, and presided
over the trial of C. Antonius, the colleague of Cicero. The following
year he went to Syria, and administered that province for two years. He
was Consul B.C. 56, and took a prominent part in resisting the factious
violence of Clodius; and Cicero, whose cause he greatly favoured,
declared him to be one of the best Consuls he had ever known. We hear
very little of him after the expiration of his Consulship, and the
period of his death is wholly unknown.
Ancient writers are not agreed as to the precise date when Cyrene was
first made a Roman province. The conflicting authorities are examined by
Thrige (Res Cyren. pp. 274-277), who adopts for this event the date B.C.
75. Borghesi, who reconsiders the question very fully in his Œuvres
Complètes, Paris, 1864, II. pp. 396-407, prefers the later date, B.C.
65, in which he is followed by Falbe and Lindberg (Numismatique de
l’Ancienne Afrique, I. p. 7). According to these two latter authorities,
Lollius, whose name appears on the coins of Cyrene, was its first
Proprætor; but it is not unlikely that he was preceded by Cn. Lentulus
Marcellinus, whether we take the earlier or the later of the above-
mentioned dates for the establishment of the Roman province there. He
may be the same as a Cnæus Lentulus whose name appears on a Roman family
coin (Cohen, Description Générale, p. 104, No. 25) as Quæstor, and who
was probably Quæstor in Spain with Metellus, about B.C. 79-75.
* * * * *
PLATE 66.—BRONZE ICONIC HEAD.
_Life Size._
This head is in very fine condition, and a most interesting example of
ancient portraiture in bronze.
The person whom it represents has not yet been identified; the type of
the features seems rather African than Greek or Roman, and it is
possible, therefore, that this head may represent some king of Numidia
or Mauritania. The eyes have been inlaid in vitreous pastes, portions of
which still remain in the sockets. The eyelashes are indicated by
notched lines. The under lip is formed of a separate piece of bronze,
the junction of which may be traced along the edge of the lip.
It is probable that the lips were covered with a thin plate of silver or
some artificial substance which served to represent their difference of
colour. The hair and beard are finished with great care and refinement
of treatment. Throughout there is a scrupulous adherence to nature, and
this head may be considered as an interesting example of that realistic
school of portraiture which seems to have originated in the time of
Lysippus.
It was found in the Temple of Apollo, on the original floor of the
eastern part of the _cella_, 11 feet beneath a mosaic pavement
superadded in Roman times. Near it were some small fragments of bronze
horses, very much injured, as if by fire, some bits of gold leaf, and
several terra-cotta lamps. (See _ante_, pp. 42, 43.)
* * * * *
PLATE 67.—APHRODITE.
_Height 2 feet 4 inches._
This statuette is broken off below the knees. The figure is draped in a
tunic, reaching probably to the feet, and girt at the waist; a _peplos_
passes round the right hip. The arms are wanting. The head is bound with
a diadem.
This figure has been so mutilated that it is difficult to judge of it as
a composition. The marble is of an exquisite quality, and is wrought
with a refined skill, which shows that this statuette belongs to the
best period of Greek art. The countenance is one of great beauty. The
long eyes and general type of the features are characteristic of
Aphrodite.
Though Praxiteles is said to have first made nude statues of this
goddess, draped representations of her are comparatively rare, except
those executed in the archaic period.
* * * * *
CYRENE.
_Height 1 foot 3 inches._
On this Plate is also represented a female torso, attired in a tunic
reaching only to the knees. The head, arms, and legs of this figure are
wanting. Above the girdle the fashion of the tunic is peculiar. The
sides are left open, so as to expose the breasts, between which the
folds are gathered together in a broad band. On this band and on the
folds near it traces of red colour may yet be seen.
The composition of the drapery in this statuette is remarkable for
severe and simple beauty. It is probably executed by a Greek sculptor of
the best period. The type and costume are those of a young girl trained
to the chase or athletic exercises. These characteristics make it
probable that in this statuette we have the nymph Cyrene herself, of
whom there are two other representations in this collection of
sculptures. (See Pl. 76, and No. 6, _post._) Both these statuettes were
found in a large temple near the Stadium, with some other fragments of
sculpture of a very fine character. (See _ante_, p. 75.)
* * * * *
PLATE 68.—ICONIC FEMALE FIGURE.
_Height 6 feet 6½ inches._
This figure is clad in a tunic reaching to the feet, over which is an
ample mantle or _peplos_ wound round the body. Her head is bound with a
diadem, and covered at the back with a veil. From the character of the
features, it may be inferred that this statue is a portrait rather than
the representation of any ideal personage. If such is the case, it is
probably the portrait of some queen, perhaps of the family of the
Egyptian Ptolemies, as several of the queens of this dynasty are
represented on their coins wearing the diadem and veil. Though this
figure has rather an imposing effect at a distance, near inspection
shows that it is very coarsely executed. The proportions are very
clumsy. It was found in some ruins on the north side of the Temple of
Apollo.
* * * * *
PLATE 69.—BUST OF THE EMPEROR ANTONINUS PIUS.
_Height 2 feet 4½ inches._
This bust is well sculptured and in very fine condition. The features
are intact. The Emperor is represented clad in the _paludamentum_, or
military cloak, which is fastened by a circular _fibula_ on the right
shoulder over a tunic and cuirass. This bust was found on the site of a
building marked “Palace” on the Plan, but which, from the number of
Imperial busts discovered in it, was probably an Augusteum. (See _ante_,
p. 76.)
* * * * *
PLATE 70.—BUST OF THE EMPEROR MARCUS AURELIUS.
_Height 2 feet 4¼ inches, inclusive of plinth._
This bust is in very fine condition, having sustained no injury except
the fracture of the neck. The Emperor wears on his shoulders the
_paludamentum_, fastened on the right shoulder by a _fibula_. The hair
is skilfully disposed in clustering masses, and the general treatment of
the head is simple and dignified, though as a work of art this bust is
inferior to the Antoninus already described. It was found in the
building marked “Palace” on the Plan, which, as has been already
remarked, was, probably, an Augusteum.
* * * * *
PLATE 71.—APHRODITE EUPLOIA.
_Height 1 foot 9 inches._
A small statuette representing Venus in the act of adjusting the sandal
of her left foot. She leans forward standing on her right leg, and
resting her left thigh against a pillar. The toes of her raised foot,
now broken away, have been supported by a dolphin. Her left arm, which
is also wanting, is drawn back, and probably rested on the pillar; as
the head is broken away at the base of the neck, it is uncertain in
which direction it turned. Drapery hangs from the column, against which
a rudder is leaning. Many varieties and repetitions of this figure are
extant, in marble and bronze, among which the following may be cited:—
1. A small bronze figure in the British Museum. (Millingen, in the
Transactions of the Royal Society of Literature, 2nd series, i. p. 62.)
2. A small bronze figure found at Herculaneum. (Antichità di Ercol., vi.
14; Müller, Denkmäler d.a. Kunst, ii. Taf. xxxvi., fig. 283.)
3. A small bronze torso in the British Museum. (Clarac, Musée de
Sculpture, i. pl. 628, fig. 1354.)
4. A small bronze figure. (Galeotti, Mus. Odeschalc., ii. pl. 35.)
5. A small marble torso in the British Museum. (Museum Marbles, x. pl.
20, p. 43.)
6. A similar figure occurs on the bronze coins of Aphrodisias during the
Roman period. (Mionnet, Recueil, iii. p. 323, No. 109.)
Several small torsos in marble, which represent the same subject, have
been found in Crete, Rhodes, Cos, and Calymnos. It is evident, front the
number of repetitions of this figure, that they are all derived from
some celebrated original. The name of Aphrodite Euploia has been given
to this figure because, in two instances, the statuette now under
consideration and the bronze figure in the British Museum, published by
Millingen (No. 1, _supra_), the goddess leans on a rudder. The veil held
over her head in the latter bronze seems to represent the sail filled by
a favourable wind. These nautical emblems would accord well with the
epithet Euploia, “the giver of a favourable voyage,” which was given to
Aphrodite. In this character she was an object of special worship at
Cnidus. The number of small statuettes with this type which have been
found in cities of the Archipelago suggests the notion that they may
have been dedicated by seafaring men after a voyage.
This statuette was found with several other statues of Venus in a small
temple, marked on the Plan “Temple of Venus.” (See _ante_, p. 77.) The
composition is very graceful, but the forms rather coarse and clumsy. It
is, probably, of the Roman period.
* * * * *
PLATE 72.—GROUP OF APHRODITE AND EROS.
_Height 3 feet 2½ inches._
The hands and head of the Venus being wanting, the motive of the figure
is uncertain, but it is probable that the goddess was represented
engaged in her toilette: her drapery is gathered round her lower limbs;
on her feet are sandals. The Cupid bestrides a dolphin, in which
attitude he is frequently represented at the side of statues of Venus.
In Clarac’s Musée de Sculpture are two groups of Aphrodite and Eros, in
which the drapery is similarly disposed,—Pl. 607, fig. 1339, and Pl.
615, fig. 1366. This group, though rather coarse in execution, is copied
from a good original. It was found in the Temple of Venus.
* * * * *
PLATE 73.—UNKNOWN FEMALE FIGURE OF THE ROMAN PERIOD.
_Height 5 feet 9½ inches._
This figure is clad in a tunic reaching to the feet, and a mantle, the
end of which she is casting over her left shoulder, and in the folds of
which her left hand is partially muffled. Her hair is plaited and wound
round her head, after a fashion prevalent in the time of the Empress
Sabina, the period to which this figure may therefore be assigned with
probability. It is evidently a portrait, but has not as yet been
identified. The countenance is very expressive, and the whole figure,
though not finely executed, is interesting from the simplicity of the
conception and the impression it conveys of a faithful rendering from
nature. The right forearm, which was a separate piece of marble, has
been broken away. It was found in the Temple of Venus. (See _ante_, p.
77.)
* * * * *
PLATE 74.—ICONIC FEMALE BUST.
_Height 1 foot 10½ inches._
This bust is remarkable for the singular headdress, composed of plaits
coiled round in a conical mass.
This headdress seems a caricature of that which prevailed in the time of
the Empress Faustina the Elder; and as the bust is evidently a portrait,
it may represent some lady of the period of that Empress. The sculpture
is very inferior to that of the busts of Antoninus and Aurelius already
described. This bust, with another nearly identical, was found on the
site of the supposed “Temple of Venus.” (See _ante_, p. 77.)
* * * * *
PLATE 75.—HEAD OF PERSEUS.
_Height 4 inches._
This head has wings, which are characteristic either of Mercury or of
Perseus. The countenance, however, has an intense expression, which
seems more suitable to the hero than the god. This head is probably
broken off from a statuette representing Perseus holding in his hand the
head of the slain Medusa. A very similar head occurs among the reliefs
which ornament the cuirass of a Roman emperor on the torso described
_post_, No. 107, p. 104.
The features are very forcibly modelled. This head is probably a work of
the Macedonian period. It was found in the Temple of Venus. (See _ante_,
p. 77.)
* * * * *
PLATE 76.—CYRENE CROWNED BY LIBYA.
_Group in Relief, 3 feet 4 inches by 2 feet 3 inches._
This relief represents the nymph Cyrene in the act of strangling a lion,
while, to commemorate this triumph, a crown is held over her head by
Libya. Below is the inscription engraved Pl. 82, No. 19, which may be
thus translated:—
“Here over the architrave, Carpos, making this dedication in token of
great hospitality, has placed the lion-slaying Cyrene, whom Libya,
having the glory of three continents, herself crowns.”
In this group the nymph Cyrene is represented in attire very like that
of Diana Venatrix. She wears a succinct _chiton_ reaching to the knees,
over which is a mantle, and buskins; her hair is drawn back from her
face.
Libya wears a talaric _chiton_ girt at the waist, and a mantle fastened
at the breast and falling down behind; her hair, bound with a diadem, is
arranged over her forehead in long regular curls, and falls down her
neck; at her side is an animal _couchant_, of which the head is broken
off, and which is probably a gazelle.
According to one legend, Cyrene was the daughter of Hypseus, king of the
Lapithæ, in Thessaly, whose flocks she guarded against wild beasts.
Apollo seeing her slay a lion in the valley of Pelion, became enamoured
of her, and carried her off to the parts of Libya which afterwards bore
her name. According to another legend, Eurypylus, king of Libya, having
promised a portion of his kingdom to the person who would slay a lion
then dreaded for his ravages, Cyrene performed this exploit, and
received in reward the promised district. It is probably in connection
with this latter legend that Libya is introduced crowning Cyrene in this
relief. Aristæus, the mythic founder of Cyrene according to some, was
the son of Apollo and Cyrene. The composition of this relief suggests
the idea that it may have been a metope. Hence the words ὑπὲρ μελάθροιο
in the inscription have been translated “above the architrave.” It was
found in the Temple of Venus.
* * * * *
[Illustration:
BACCHUS,
No. 61.]
[Illustration:
APOLLO CITHARŒDES,
No. 62.]
[Illustration:
THE EMPEROR HADRIAN?
No. 63.]
[Illustration:
MINERVA & A MALE HEAD,
No. 64.]
[Illustration:
CNŒUS CORNELIUS LENTULUS MARCELLINUS,
(PROPRÆTOR OF CYRENE.)
No. 65.]
[Illustration:
BRONZE ICONIC HEAD,
No. 66.]
[Illustration:
APHRODITE & FEMALE TORSO,
No. 67.]
[Illustration:
ICONIC FEMALE STATUE,
No. 68.]
[Illustration:
THE EMPEROR ANTONINUS PIUS,
No. 69.]
[Illustration:
BUST OF A ROMAN EMPEROR,
No. 70.]
[Illustration:
APHRODITE EUPLOIA,
No. 71.]
[Illustration:
APHRODITE AND EROS,
No. 72.]
[Illustration:
ICONIC FEMALE FIGURE,
No. 73.]
[Illustration:
FEMALE BUST OF ROMAN PERIOD,
No. 74.]
[Illustration:
HEAD OF PERSEUS,
No. 75.]
[Illustration:
THE NYMPH CYRENE OVERCOMING A LION
& BEING CROWNED BY LYBYA,
No. 76.]
No. III.
LIST OF SCULPTURES FOUND ON VARIOUS SITES AT CYRENE.
NOTE.—_The Nos. subjoined to each object are those now affixed to them
in the British Museum._
* * * * *
TEMPLE OF APOLLO.
1. Apollo Citharœdus.—Pl. 62.
2. The Emperor Hadrian.—Pl. 63.
3. Bronze iconic head.—Pl. 66.
4. Head of Pallas Athene.—Pl. 64.
5. Head of Cnæus Lentulus Marcellinus.—Pl. 65.
6. Group of the nymph Cyrene overcoming a lion by strangling him. The
nymph is attired like Diana for the chase. Her hair is bound with a
diadem, and gathered into a club behind. Height, 2 ft. 10½ in. (3).
7. Jupiter Ammon; round his lower limbs a mantle; right hand broken
away, left hand placed behind his back. On the face are traces of red
colour.—Representations of Jupiter Ammon are rare in sculpture. The head
of this deity is one of the principal types on the coins of Cyrene, and
other towns in the Cyrenaica, and occurs on the cuirass of the Roman
emperor. (See _post_, No. 107.) Height, 2 ft. 10 in. (7).
8. Youthful male figure, wearing a mantle, gathered round his waist and
leaving the right side of his chest bare; his head bound with a twisted
diadem. His left hand is placed behind his back; his right hand has been
extended in front of him. The head, which is inserted in a socket, and
may not belong to this figure, bears some resemblance to that of
Alexander the Great. The right arm is wanting. At his feet, on the left,
is a conical object, possibly intended to represent the Delphic
_omphalos_: unfinished at the back. Height, 3 ft. 9 in. (26).
9. A beardless figure, wearing a _chiton_, a mantle, and sandals; his
head laurelled; his right hand held across his breast; in his left hand
a laurel-branch; at left side, some object, perhaps a case for rolls of
MS. This figure looks up, and may represent either a priest or a poet
taking part in the worship of the temple. Style very late and coarse.
Height, 3 ft. (4).
10. A figure precisely similar. Height, 2 ft. 10½ in. (5).
11. Female figure, wearing talaric _chiton_ and _diploidion_; over
forehead, _sphendone_: head looks up. Arms wanting from the elbow; head
and lower arms have been inserted in sockets. This figure may possibly
be a Juno. Art late and bad. Height, 4 ft. 5 in. (6).
12. Female figure, probably Hygieia, clad in a talaric _chiton_ and
_diploidion_, over which is a _peplos_ wound round the body. Round right
arm a serpent twisted; the right hand wanting; the action of the left
arm suggests that she has held a _patera_ to feed the snake. Over the
forehead is a radiated _sphendone_, in the centre of which a flower.
Unfinished at the back. The head has been fitted to a socket on the
neck, but it is doubtful whether that now adjusted belong to this
figure. Art very late and coarse. Height, 3 ft. 8 in. (25).
13. Artemis moving rapidly forward: she wears a talaric _chiton_, a
_peplos_, and sandals; her hair is gathered up over her forehead like
that of Apollo; her arms, which are wanting, and her feet, have been
fitted on at a joint; her neck is let into a socket. Height, 3 ft. 3½
in. (8).
14. Female figure, wearing low _sphendone_, talaric _chiton_, girt at
the waist, _peplos_, and shoes. Height, 2 ft. 8 in. (52).
15. Small winged figure in relief, broken off at hips, which probably
represents Somnus reclining. Height, 8 in. (107).
16. Torso of small figure of Eros (?). Height, 5½ in. (109).
17. Right leg, broken off halfway up the thigh, from statue of youthful
Bacchus. At side, trunk of tree, encircled with vine-bearing branches.
Height, 1 ft. 6 in. (103).
18. Right leg from a colossal statue. This leg is broken off above the
ancle, and terminates just above the knee, in a joint which has probably
been concealed by drapery falling over it; it may, therefore, have
belonged to an acrolithic statue. It is in a very fine style, and may
have been executed in the Macedonian period. Height, 2 ft. 1 in. (15).
19. Archaic head of Apollo. The back hair long, and wound round the
crown in a braid; in front short curls. The chin broken away. This head
is copied from the same original as the Apollo of the Phygalian room.
(_Marbles in British Museum_, vol. xi. Pl. 32.) In the Theseium at
Athens is a similar figure. Height, 11 in. (53).
20. Youthful heroic head, looking to the right; the top of the head cut
off flat. Roman art. Height, 10 in. (55).
21. Female head bound with diadem; broken away at back of head. Blue
marble. Height, 5¼ in. (64).
22. Head of Ariadne (?); hair bound with ivy; crown cut off. Height, 6½
in. (127).
23. Head of Diana; hair gathered into a high topknot, and bound with
diadem; eyes have been made of vitreous paste, which remains in one eye.
Height, 7 in. (128).
24. Head of Diana; hair gathered into a high topknot, and bound with
diadem. Height, 5½ in. (129).
25. Head of Diana; hair gathered into a high topknot, and bound with
diadem. Late art. Height, 7 in. (131).
26. Youthful heroic head (Theseus?); hair bound with twisted diadem;
back of head broken off flat. A fine type. Height, 5¼ in. (124).
27. Two fragments of a female head bound with a diadem. Blue marble;
diadem painted black; eyes and hair red. Injured by fire. Height, 8½ in.
(145).
28. Left side of a female head wearing a _stephane_ and veil. Height, 5½
in. (143).
29. Female head, bound with low _stephane_. Much defaced. Height, 6 in.
(137).
30. Female head looking up; hair slightly waved, a single ringlet falls
on each side of neck; back of head and neck cut flat. Style mean and
late. Height, 1 ft. 2½ in. (86).
31. Panther or lioness sitting on its haunches; hind-quarter broken
away. Very rude. Height, 7½ in. (122).
* * * * *
RUINS NORTH OF TEMPLE OF APOLLO.
32. Female figure.—Pl. 68.
33. Diana Venatrix, wearing a succinct _chiton_, a _chlamys_ hanging
over left arm, and _endromides_; at her side a hound; her left hand is
advanced, and probably held a bow; a quiver rests against her right leg.
Art very late and bad. Height, 3 ft. 11 in. (159).
34. Male figure, clad in a _chiton_ and mantle; broken away below the
knees; hands and nose wanting; his right arm, muffled in his mantle, is
passed across his breast. The countenance is that of an aged person. The
head being bound with a fillet, perhaps this figure may represent a
poet. He is beardless. (See _ante_, p. 75.) Present height, 5 ft. 2 in.
(37).
35. Seated female figure, clad in a talaric _chiton_, and a _peplos_
covering the back of her head; her feet and forearms are wanting; she
wears a girdle tied in a singular knot under her bosom, with ornamented
ends hanging down; her _peplos_ has a deep fringe at the edge. The edges
of her girdle are painted in vermilion, which is still very fresh, and
the same colour appears at the joints where the forearms are broken off.
She is seated on an oblong seat with a cushion; her feet have rested on
a footstool. This figure was found close to another female seated figure
of colossal size, but in other respects resembling it very closely,
which was inscribed with the name of Archippe, daughter of Ptolemaios, a
priestess. It is therefore probable that the smaller seated figure may
also be a priestess. (See _ante_, p. 75, where it is erroneously stated
that Archippe is one of the Ptolemaic dynasty.) This statue is
unfinished at the back, and the crown of the head has been cut away. It
probably stood in a niche. Height, 4 ft. 2 in. (36).
36. Youthful Bacchus crowned with vine-leaves. The feet remain, but the
legs are wanting from the knees. The right forearm and the nose are
broken away; the left elbow rests on the trunk of a tree, round which is
twined a vine. The right hand has hung down by the side, and has held
some object, to support which two square projections are left on right
hip and thigh. The proportions of this figure are good, and it is fairly
modelled. Height, 3 ft. 2 in. (27).
37. Female figure, clad in a _chiton_ and _peplos_; in right hand
_oinochoe_. Head broken off at neck, which is let into a socket. Poor
art. Height, 2 ft. 6 in. (41).
38. Legs from a male figure, life size, wearing hunting-boots; at the
side a _nebris_, or fawn-skin, flung over the trunk of a tree. Height, 2
ft. 1 in. (150).
39. Head of Venus (?) bound with diadem; hair in deep waves, cut away at
the back. Broken off, probably, from a statue. Height, 1 ft. 1½ in.
(61).
40. Female head; hair gathered into a knot on the crown; probably meant
for Artemis. Art late and bad. Height, 6 in. (132).
* * * * *
SMALL BUILDING TO THE WEST OF TEMPLE OF APOLLO.
41. Torso of seated female figure, wearing _peplos_ and talaric _chiton_
bound with girdle. Height, 1 ft. 4½ in. (93).
* * * * *
NEIGHBOURHOOD OF TEMPLE OF APOLLO.
42. Female head, cut off flat above the forehead, to receive the hair,
which must have been sculptured on a different piece of marble. Height,
11½ in. (88).
43. Youthful male (?) head; traces of red colour in the eyes. The top of
the head cut off flat to receive the hair, which must have been fitted
on, as in the case of the head last described. Height, 8 in. (89).
44. Female head; hair waved. Style late and bad. Height, 8 in. (90).
45. Head of Bacchus wearing a diadem and a crown of vine-leaves, with
bunches of grapes hanging down on each side of the cheek. Height, 7½ in.
(92).
* * * * *
TEMPLE OF VENUS.
46. Female bust.—Pl. 74.
47. Statue, probably of an empress.—Pl. 73.
48. Group of nymph Cyrene crowned by Libya.—Pl. 76.
49. Female bust.—The head-dress is similar to that of Faustina the
Elder, whom this bust may therefore represent, though the features have
little likeness to that empress. The shoulders are draped. The sculpture
is mean, and deficient in style. The end of the nose is slightly
injured, but in other respects this head is in good condition. Height, 1
ft. 11 in. (117).
50. Aphrodite Euploia.—Pl. 71.
51. Group of Venus, with Cupid on a dolphin.—Pl. 72.
52. Similar group.—The Venus wants arms and head. Her drapery falls over
a _stelé_ on left, in front of which is the Cupid. Sculpture late and
coarse. Height, 1 ft. 1½ in. (75).
53. Fragment from similar group. Eros on dolphin, holding up part of the
drapery with right hand; at his left hand part of left leg of Venus.
Height, 8½ in. (71).
54. Fragment from similar group. No remains of the Venus. Height, 7 in.
(72).
55. Venus; lower half draped; at left side dolphin. Head and right arm
wanting. Height, 11 in. (66).
56. Draped statuette of Venus, from waist downwards. This fragment
appears to be Greek marble, and the sculpture is of a fine period.
Height, 1 ft. 2½ in. (22).
57. Torso of nude Venus. Headless; right leg broken off halfway up
thigh, left leg below knee; right arm broken off above wrist, left below
shoulder; on each arm, armlet. Right arm advanced, as if to cover pubes.
Fair Roman sculpture. Height, 1 ft. 2 in. (104).
58. Head of Venus bound with _opisthosphendone_. Height, 6 in. (139).
59. Upper part of reclining figure of Somnus, in relief; in right hand
two poppy-heads. Left hand supports head. Length, 6½ in. (74).
60. Dolphin from a group, placed head downwards; a female hand rests on
his tail. Height, 1 ft. 1 in. (153).
61. Torso of Eros, with ringlets falling on either side of neck.
Sculpture of a good period. Height, 6 in. (105).
62. Youthful male head, in conical cap, with flowing hair,—Atys (?).
Height, 9½ in. (59).
63. Torso from knees to neck of statuette of Diana Polymammia. Wants
arms; round neck two archaic bracelets. Height, 6 in. (20).
64. Torso of triple Hekate. Heads broken away; at the feet of one of the
figures, a hound looking up. All these figures have their arms hanging
down. One of them holds in her right hand an _oinochoe_; the others hold
in the right hand some uncertain object. Height, 7½ in. (73).
65. Torso of female statuette, wearing short _chiton_ and nebris.
Artemis (?). Fair sculpture. Height, 1 ft. 1½ in. (111).
66. Within a fold of pendent drapery, perhaps broken off from a statue,
a female term, clad in a panther’s skin, and placed on a base. Artemis
(?). Broken off at neck. Height, 6 in. (154).
67. Demeter Dadophoros. Rudely sculptured in stone of the country. She
wears a talaric _chiton_ and a _peplos_ thrown over the head; in her
right hand she holds ears of corn, in her left a torch. Height, 1 ft. 11
in. (50).
68. Seated male figure, Jupiter (?), holding in right hand some twisted
object, perhaps a distaff; lower half draped. Sculptured in freestone.
Height, 1 ft. 8 in. (97).
69. Isis; bust in alabaster. Broken away below breasts. The bust clad in
a _chiton_ and fringed _peplos_, which is fastened by the _nodus
Isiacus_. On the crown of the head is a hole for the attachment of some
ornament; the hair bound with a _sphendone_, and falling on the neck in
long ringlets; at the back of the head a cluster either of curls or of
fruit. Height, 11 in. (83).
70. Isis, clad in a talaric _chiton_ and a mantle, which is fastened on
the breast in the _nodus Isiacus_. The ends of a fringed veil hang down
on her shoulders; wants head. Fair sculpture. Height, 1 ft. 9 in. (84).
71. Lower part of seated male statuette, of which the left leg and
thigh, part of the right thigh, and the base of the lyre alone remain.
At left side, gryphon. The proportions seem rather those of Hercules
than of Apollo; but as the sculpture is of a late period, this deviation
from the usual type may be only the result of ignorance in the artist.
Height, 7 in. (101).
72. Relief representing the oracular shrine of Apollo. On right, Apollo
seated, with right foot on _omphalos_, the lower part of his body
draped; by his side a tripod. On left, gryphon seated, and bearded
ithyphallic term, probably of Dionysos. On the plinth, the inscription
No. 34. Sculpture very rude and in bad condition. Height, 10 in. by 8½
in. (77).
73. Pilaster in form of Pan: on his head a bracket. Round the body a
mantle, in which his right hand and arm are muffled; in left hand,
syrinx. The bracket is ornamented with palm-branches. Red colour is
quite distinct on the drapery and bracket. Height, 3 ft. 6 in. (28).
74. Aristæus (?) Round the lower half of his body a mantle, falling over
his left shoulder, his right hand on his hip; under left arm a staff,
round which a snake is coiled. His hair is long; his head bound with a
diadem, above which has been some kind of crown or upright head-dress;
the crown of the head has been worked flat; his left hand, which has
rested on his staff, is wanting. At the side of left foot, a conical
object, which may be either a rude representation of the _omphalos_, or
a mere support. In this figure, the features and attributes resemble
those of Apollo, but the general type is rather heroic than divine. It
may, therefore, be considered with probability a statue of Aristæus, the
mythic founder of Cyrene, who, as the son of Apollo by the nymph Cyrene,
was said to resemble him in features. Height, 4 ft. 6 in. (158).
75. Head of Athene in Corinthian helmet. Well preserved. Height, 10 in.
(60).
76. Head of bearded Bacchus, from term. The hair falls in long tresses,
and is clustered behind each temple in the archaic fashion. On the crown
of the head a hole for the insertion of an ornament. Height, 8½ in.
(81).
77. Torso of youthful satyr, naked; head, arms, and both legs wanting.
Well sculptured, in Greek marble. Height, 8 in. (82).
78. Seated female figure, wearing a _chiton_ girt at the waist, over
which is a _peplos_; on each side of the chair, a _sphinx_. Head, both
hands, and head of sphinx on right wanting. Height, 11½ in. (76).
79. Youthful male figure, wearing helmet, _chiton exomis_ girt up above
the knee and fastened over left shoulder; shoulder-belt and high
boots,—_endromides_, as if attired for the chase. Both arms wanting; the
back is unfinished, as if this statue had stood in a niche. The right
arm has been raised and the head turned that way. At right side, trunk
of tree. Sculpture very rude and coarse. Height, 6 ft. 4 in. (68).
80. Similar figure. Wants head; sculpture very rude and coarse. Height,
4 ft. 11 in. (149).
81. Fragment, probably of a group of a hunter and goat, of which all
that remains is the goat standing on his hind legs, the hand which holds
it, and one leg of the man, wearing a hunting-boot. Sculpture coarse and
late. Height, 1 ft. ½ in. (116).
82. Fragment of relief; legs clad in _endromides_; from standing male
figure, broken off at knees. Height, 10½ in. (99).
83. Draped term. Wanting head; the left hand placed across the breast,
under the drapery, in an attitude similar to that of a female term in
the Græco-Roman gallery at the British Museum, thought to be the Venus
Architis. (See _Museum Marbles_, vol. ii. Pl. 37.) Height, 1 ft. 4½ in.
(161).
84. Torso of male figure, wearing cuirass and _chlamys_ girt by a belt.
Broken off at knees and neck; much worn. Height, 10½ in. (79).
85. Female figure, clad in talaric _chiton_ and _diploidion_ fastened on
right shoulder. Wants head and arms. Height, 1 ft. 10 in. (120).
86. Youthful male torso; a _peplos_ wound round his waist and over left
forearm; right arm advanced across body. Height, 1 ft. (106).
87. Fragment of relief. Female figure seated, clad in a talaric _chiton_
and _peplos_. This is probably a fragment of a votive tablet, as the
figure seems looking round to the right. Height, 8½ in. by 4 in. (96).
88. Part of votive tablet in relief; a male and a female figure,
standing side by side. The male figure wears a mantle round the lower
part of his body; the female, a talaric _chiton_. Heads wanting. Height,
1 ft. by 10½ in. (78).
89. Female head, with conical head-dress; similar to that given Pl.
74.—The apex of the cone is pierced as if for suspension. It is
possible, therefore, that this head was used as a weight, as the bronze
weights of Roman steelyards were sometimes fashioned in the form of
heads. This head, like that engraved Pl. 74, is evidently a portrait.
Height, 11 in. (40).
90. Female head, bound with a _sphendone_ and wreath of ears of corn.
Height, 6 in. (140).
91. Female head; hair tied in a knot over the crown; face in bad
condition. Height, 4 in. (130).
92. Female head, bound with _stephane_. Height, 5½ in. (133).
93. Heroic (?) head, bound with diadem; hair unfinished. Height, 4 in.
(135).
94. Youthful heroic head, looking to right; hair in short curls. Height,
10 in. (56).
95. Head of boy; at back of head, drapery. Height, 9 in. (57).
96. Aged male head; portrait. Broken off at neck; nose slightly injured.
Height, 7 in. (58).
97. Youthful male head, in conical cap. Atys (?). Hair long. Height, 9½
in. (59).
98. Female head, bound with diadem; the crown cut off. Traces of red
colour in the hair. Height, 6 in. (144).
99. Vine branch round trunk from statue. Height, 6 in. (123).
100. Fragment of group representing lion on back of bull. Rude and late.
Height, 8 in. (112).
101. Head of bull. Rude. Height, 5 in. (113).
102. Legs of standing figure, clad in talaric _chiton_ and sandals; has
been coloured red. Height, 9 in. (100).
103. Dog standing on hind legs, from group. Height, 9½ in. (121).
104. Head of Venus.—Hair covered with coif and bound with diadem. Badly
preserved. Height, 4¼ in. (141).
* * * * *
AUGUSTEUM.
105. Bust of Antoninus Pius.—Pl. 69.
106. Bust of Marcus Aurelius.—Pl. 70.
107. Head of Lucius Verus, broken at the neck.—Nose broken off;
sculpture good, but condition indifferent. Height, 1 ft. (16).
108. Torso of a Roman emperor in a cuirass.—This is the torso which was
seen by Beechey lying on the ground, and which he supposes to have
belonged to the statue of a Ptolemy. The building near which it was
found (marked “Palace” on the plan of Cyrene,—see _ante_, p. 76) was,
probably, an Augusteum, or temple dedicated to one or more Roman
emperors, as several imperial busts and statues were discovered here.
This cuirass is very richly ornamented with reliefs. On the breastplate
is a female figure, draped to the feet, representing Rome. On either
side a Victory flies towards her to crown her; the Victory on the right
carries a cornucopia and a sash, the one on the left a trumpet. The feet
of Rome rest on the back of the wolf suckling the twins Romulus and
Remus, whose figures have been broken away. On the lower part of the
cuirass are, in the centre, the head of Jupiter Ammon, and on either
side a winged youthful head, probably Perseus, between which and the
head of Ammon is, on either side, an eagle with spreading wings. Under
the cuirass is a jerkin, on which are two helmets and two swords in
sheaths, arranged alternately with the reliefs already described. On
either flank of the cuirass is an elephant’s head. This torso evidently
belongs to the figure of a Roman emperor. As the reliefs are finely
executed, it is probably a work of the Augustan age. Height, 4 ft. 6 in.
(35).
109. A female figure, clad in a talaric _chiton_ girt at the waist and
looped on the sleeves, over which falls a _peplos_, gathered over left
arm; on the feet, shoes. The head and forearms wanting. Art coarse and
late. Height, 5 ft. 9½ in. (33).
110. Bust, perhaps intended to represent the Empress Faustina the
Younger, as the hair is waved and gathered up behind like hers. The nose
is broken away, which makes it very difficult to identify the person
represented. The shoulders are covered with a _peplos_, under which is a
tunic. Fair Roman art. Height, 1 ft. 10 in. (18).
111. A block tapering upwards, which has perhaps been fitted into a
niche. On one face is represented in low relief a youthful male figure
wearing the Phrygian cap (Atys); his body is naked: on either side is a
sword pointed downwards. Two holes are drilled in the plane of the
relief, one on each side of the figure, apparently for the attachment of
some ornament. Height, 8 in. (102).
* * * * *
LARGE TEMPLE NEAR THE STADIUM. (See _ante_, p. 71.)
112. Part of a male head, rather larger than life; much injured by fire;
the nose is destroyed, and the head broken in two pieces. This head is
finely executed; the lips are painted red, the beard black. Height, 1
ft. 2½ in. (162).
113. Lower half of seated female figure, wearing a talaric _chiton_ and
_peplos_. Demeter (?). Coarsely sculptured in stone of the country.
Height, 6 in. (98).
* * * * *
SMALL TEMPLE NEAR THE STADIUM. (See _ante_, p. 75.)
114. Female torso, perhaps the nymph Cyrene.—Pl. 67.
115. Aphrodite.—Pl. 67.
116. Fragment of face from colossal head; coarsely sculptured in blue
marble. The nose, right cheek, and part of left eye, have been broken
away; in the hair are traces of red colour. Height, 1 ft. 6 in. (54).
117. Fragment of a group representing a bull attacked by a lion. The
bull is crouching; of the lion, who has sprung on him from behind, the
fore paws only remain; the head of the bull is wanting. Height, 5¼ in.
(115).
* * * * *
TEMPLE OF BACCHUS.
118. Statue of Bacchus.—Pl. 61.
119. Panther, half couching; head to left; left paw raised; round neck
wreath of ivy; right leg and lower jaw broken away. In the stone of the
country. Height, 1 ft. 11 in. (156).
* * * * *
FROM NEAR COLONNADE WEST OF TEMPLE OF BACCHUS.
120. Female figure, draped in talaric _chiton_ and _diploidion_, over
which is a _peplos_ wound round the body and left arm. The right hand
rests on the hip; the head and left hand are wanting. The drapery is
well composed, and from the goodness of the sculpture, this statue is,
probably, of the Augustan age, and may represent some member of the
imperial family. Height, 5 ft. 7 in. (39).
121. Pallas Athene, clad in a talaric _chiton_, over which a _peplos_ is
wound round the body. The ægis is shown on the bosom, apparently
attached to the edge of the _peplos_, where it is doubled back between
the breasts. The head and forearms are wanting. The drapery of this
figure is well composed; the execution probably Roman. Height, 4 ft. 9½
in. (31).
122. Female figure, wearing a talaric _chiton_ and a _peplos_ drawn over
the back of her head. The hair is waved in front, and bound with a
_stephane_? Underneath the veil the hair is plaited, and twisted round
the head, forming a sort of crown at the back. Red colour is very
distinct on the _chiton_, over the left thigh. This figure is evidently
a portrait, perhaps of a priestess. The execution is late and bad. The
head-dress seems to be that of the time of Faustina the Elder. Height, 3
ft. 11 in. (24).
* * * * *
SCULPTURES OF WHICH THE PLACE OF DISCOVERY HAS NOT BEEN NOTED.
123. Torso of male figure wearing a _chiton_ girt at the waist, over
which is a _chlamys_ fastened on the breast and falling over the left
arm and side; on the neck traces of red colour. The drapery is well
composed and delicately sculptured. This torso belongs to the finest
period of Greek art. Head, right arm, and shoulder, left hand and legs,
wanting. Height, 12 in. (163).
124. Naked male torso; the head, right leg and thigh, left leg, left
arm, and nearly all the right arm, wanting. The figure is youthful, the
right shoulder and arm advanced, as if he was bending a bow; at back of
right shoulder a deep circular hole, and on the same shoulder a
depression, showing that a quiver has been attached behind. The type of
this figure suggests an Eros; but as there are no wings, it is probably
an Apollo bending his bow. The marble has been much injured by fire; but
the sculpture is superior to that of most of the Cyrene sculptures.
Height, 1 ft. 1 in. (118).
125. Group of Aphrodite and Eros. The goddess wears a _peplos_, which
falls from her left shoulder, covering the left arm and side, and is
wound round the right leg and thigh, partially concealing the left
thigh; the left arm is bent, and near the shoulder is a projection where
the hand has probably been attached; the action of the right arm, now
wanting, cannot be ascertained; the left knee is bent; the head is
wanting. At her right side has stood an Eros, of whom all that remains
is the right leg and left foot. The Aphrodite is fairly modelled. This
group probably came from the Temple of Venus. (See _ante_, No. 51.)
Height, 1 ft. 10½ in. (69).
126. Relief. Lower half of Aphrodite, holding a slight fold of drapery
across the hips; at her left side a dolphin, head downwards. Sculpture
very late and coarse, in stone of the country. Probably from Temple of
Venus, like No. 69. Height, 7½ in. (70).
127. Aristæus (?) Round the body a mantle which leaves the right arm and
side bare to the waist, and is gathered up under left arm, being
supported by the end of a long knotted staff on which this figure is
leaning, and round which a serpent is twisted; at left side the
_omphalos_ of Apollo: the head and left hand are wanting. The attitude,
arrangement of the drapery, and staff with serpent, suggest an
Æsculapius; but the form is too youthful, and the _omphalos_ connects
the figure with Apollo. The name Aristæus seems, therefore, a probable
attribution, as in the case of Nos. 158 and 65. Sculpture late and bad.
Height, 2 ft. (85).
128. Male head, bearded; the nose wanting; probably a Roman emperor. It
bears some resemblance to Pertinax. Art late and coarse. Height, 1 ft.
⁵⁄₁₀ in. (9).
129. Female figure seated in a chair, clad in a talaric _chiton_, girt
at the waist, and a _peplos_ thrown over her lower limbs; her feet on a
footstool; right arm thrown back over rail of chair, left arm bent;
head, part of left foot, and both hands, wanting. Composition good.
Height, 11½ in. (94).
130. Dionysos; in his right hand, now broken away, he has held an
_amphora_; by his left foot is a jar; his hair is bound with ivy; he
wears a mantle which leaves the right shoulder and chest, as far as the
waist, bare. Sculpture very coarse and late, in stone of the country.
Height, 1 ft. 3½ in. (80).
131. Head of Ariadne (?) bound with an ivy wreath, and a diadem over the
forehead; the hair hangs down the neck; the teeth are shown as the lips
were smiling; broken off at neck. Fair sculpture. This head seems too
feminine in type for Bacchus, and may therefore be called with
probability Ariadne (_cf._ No. 127). Height, 8½ in. (125).
132. Cybele seated in a chair, clad in a talaric _chiton_ and _peplos_;
in right hand _phiale_, in lap a lion; on either side of chair, lion
seated on his haunches. Height, 11½ in. (44).
133. Hermaphroditos; the body draped from the feet to below the hips;
the left hand holds up drapery on the thigh; head and both arms wanting;
hair has flowed down the back; the ends of a diadem hang down on each
shoulder. Rudely sculptured. Height, 3 ft. 3½ in. (45).
134. Male head wearing pointed helmet, which appears to be covered with
linen; the hair in thick and wavy masses over the forehead; the lower
jaw broken away; the front teeth of the upper jaw are seen. Perhaps this
head represents Atys; broken off at neck from statuette. Height, 4¼ in.
(142).
135. Part of draped female statuette: with her right hand she is
throwing a mantle over her shoulder, advancing left leg at the same
time; head, left arm from shoulder, and both feet, wanting. Height, 1
ft. 8 in. (16).
136. Female bust, shoulders draped; hair waved and falling down on
either side neck; inscribed on base with the name Nemesis, daughter of
Orion, and the date 16. (See Inscription No. 35.) Obtained from the
Arabs. Height, 9½ in. (91).
137. Female torso, wearing _chiton_ and _peplos_; head, legs, right
forearm, and left hand, wanting: the left hand has held a cornucopia.
This figure may therefore represent the goddess Fortune. Height, 7¼ in.
(152).
138. Fragment from high relief, probably votive. Upper portion of male
and female figure bearing offerings, probably to a divinity; the male
figure stoops forward, holding in right hand some object, perhaps a
flower; he is naked and bearded; the female figure who follows him holds
up in right hand a fruit, perhaps a pomegranate; she wears a _chiton_
and _peplos_; her hair is gathered into a knot behind. Obtained from the
Arabs. Height, 6 in. by 10 in. (95).
139. Male figure, right hand on hip; a mantle is wound round left
shoulder and over right hip; head, right arm from shoulder to wrist, and
left hand, wanting. Height, 9½ in. (63).
140. Male figure, wearing a mantle, which passes over left arm and
across the chest, being gathered up under the right arm. This figure
stands on the left leg, the right knee being bent; the left arm is
placed behind the back. From the attitude, and arrangement of the
drapery, it is probable that the right side leant on a staff, as in No.
158. In that case, we may suppose this figure to be Aristæus. (See
_ante_, No. 85.) The head and nearly all the right arm are wanting.
Height, 1 ft. 2 in. (65).
141. Torso of female figure, wearing talaric _chiton_, girt at the
waist, and _peplos_ passing across the body and gathered over left arm;
long hair falls over the shoulders behind. Coarsely sculptured in stone
of the country. Height, 10 in. (108).
142. Female head, crowned with turreted _stephanos_, in front of which
is a circular flower; hair in short curls. Broken off from statuette at
neck. Height, 4½ in. (134).
143. Female head; hair gathered into a knot behind, and drawn back from
the face; over the forehead a diadem; on the right-hand side of the head
a projection, perhaps representing a mass of hair fastened over the
diadem. Height, 4½ in. (138).
144. Upper portion of youthful male head; hair growing away from the
face; broken off at the eyes; much damaged by fire; unfinished at the
back. Probably from an heroic figure. Height, 3½ in. (147).
145. Iconic female bust; the hair drawn back from the face and gathered
into a knot at the back of the head; a ringlet falls down each side of
neck; shoulders draped. Sculpture late and bad. Height, 11 in. (148).
146. Lioness seated on hind legs. Very coarse and late. Height, 1 ft. 2
in. (155).
147. Bull’s head broken off at neck. Rudely sculptured in stone of the
country. Height, 8¼ in. (114).
148. Relief, representing a votive ear. Coarse and late sculpture.
Length, 10 in. by 6¾ in. (21).
No. IV.
INSCRIPTIONS DISCOVERED OR FOUND AT CYRENE.
* * * * *
Most of the inscriptions which have been discovered at Cyrene are of the
Roman period. In the following series those which are certainly of a
date antecedent to the Roman annexation of Cyrene are indicated as
belonging to “a good period.” In most of these inscriptions the Doric
dialect is used, and appears to have prevailed at Cyrene till the Roman
period, when the κοινή was gradually introduced.
No. 1.—Pl. 77.
Γ]νάϊον Κορνήλον Λέντολον
Ποπλίω υἱὸν Μαρκελλῖνον, πρεσ-
βευτὰν ἀντιστράταγον, τὸν
πάτρωνα καὶ σωτῆρα, Κυραναῖοι.
A dedication by the people of Cyrene to Cnæus Cornelius Lentulus
Marcellinus, son of Publius, here styled Ambassador, Proprætor, Patron,
and Saviour. This inscription is engraved on a marble base found in the
temple of Apollo, together with a pedestal, and a head representing the
person to whom the dedication is made. (See _ante_, p. 42 and 93.) In
the British Museum.
No. 2.
. . . . . . . . Ἱπποκλεῦς
Ἀγασικλῆς Φιλοκλεῦς
Ἀπόλλωνι δεκάταν.
A dedication of a tenth to Apollo, by Agasikles, son of Philokles, and
some one, son of Hippokles. On a slab of marble found in some ruins to
the north of the temple of Apollo. The upper part of this slab has been
broken away. The letters are of a good period.
No. 3.
Πολιάνθης Ἀνάξιος
τὸμ πατέρα Ἄναξιν
Ξευξιμάχω τῷ Ἀπόλλωνι
δεκάταν ἀνέθηκε.
A dedication of a statue of Anaxis, son of Xeuximachos, by his son
Polianthes, as a tenth to Apollo. On a slab of marble found on the site
of the temple of Apollo, before excavations were commenced there. The
letters are of a good period. Published, Böckh, Corpus Inscriptionum,
III. 5133, but incorrectly. See _ibid._ p. 1240.
No. 4.
Τείσων Ἰάσονος
On a marble base found in some ruins on the north of the temple of
Apollo. The letters are of the best period of Greek art.
No. 5.
ατη . . . . . . . .
το] ὺς ἑαυτοῦ
Ἀπόλλωνι.
On a small slab of marble, 1 foot 7 inches by 6 inches by 4 inches,
found under the mosaic pavement in the temple of Apollo. It is evidently
part of a dedication to Apollo. In the British Museum.
No. 6.—Pl. 78, 79.
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
λ]οχαγοὶ τεθ[ρίππ]ων
Μναστοκλῆς Βαθυκλεῦς
Πίθακος Ἀριστωνύμω
Ἀρισταγόρας Φιλοκώμω
(5) Ἀριστοφάνης Κλευγένευς
Δαμασίστρατος Καλλίππω
Ἀριστόπολις Εὐρυπτολέμω.
--
λοχαγοὶ μονίππων
Αριστοκλῆς Στεφάνω
(10) Υξαν (_sic_) Εὐπτολέμω
Στράτων Κάρνιος
Πρᾶξις θευχρήστω
Πρατομήδης Φιλίππω.
--
Τριακατιάρχαι
(15) Πολυκλῆς Μελανίππω τῶ Ἀριστάνδρω
Ἀριστοφάνης Παρα[ι]βάτα
Καλλίμαχος Ἀνν[ικ]έριος
Βαθυκλῆς Νικοστράτω
Ἰάσων Δαιμένευς
(20) Πρῶρος Κύκνω
Θαλίαρχος Εὐρυπτολέμω
Κλέων Χάρωνος
Λύσις Ἐπικλεῦς
Φίλων Ἀννικέριος
(25) Ἡρίλοχος Ἐ[πι]βάτα
Καλλίστρατος Χριστωνύμω
Νίκανδρος Ἀλεσάνδρω
Χάρων Ἰάσονος
Νικόδαμος Θα . . . .
(30) Ὀνυμοκλῆς Πολυκλεῦς
Ἱππόδαμος Φιλο[δάμ]ω.
--
λοχαγοὶ πεζῶν
Πολυάρατος Παρατ . . ος
Φιλοκλῆς Θεν . . . .
(35) Ἀντίπατρος Πολ . . . . . . ος
Πασίας Ἱπποδ[άμω
Χαιρεσίλας Ἀν[αξ]αγόρας
Ψάφων Ἀγλωμάχω
Εὐκλῆς Θευχρήστω
(40) Σίφυρος Πιθάκω
Φίλων Θευχρήστω
Τιμῶχος Πολυτίμω
Περίανδρος Θρασυλλίωνος
Θεύδωρος Καλλιμάχω
(45) Φρασσάμενος Ἀριστοτέλε[υς
Ἄναξις Δαμώνακτος
Πράταρχος Ὀνυμάρχω
Τιμόλας Πιθάκω
Θεύμανδρος Λυσίππω
(50) Δαϊλέων Θευχρήστω.
--
λοχαγοὶ πελταστᾶν συμμ . . . .
τοῖς τριακατίοις
Ἀνδροκλῆς Κα[λλιμ]άχω
Ἀριστομένης Α . . . . . . . .
(55) Πρῶρος Σωσία . .
Ἀριστοφ[ῶν . . . . . . . .
Τελεσα . . . . . .
Ευκ . . . . . .
On a marble block, 4 feet 6 inches by 2 feet 1 inch by 1 foot, found in
the Pronaos of the large temple near the Stadium. (See _ante_, p. 71.)
This inscription gives a list of λοχαγοί, captains, of charioteers,
τέθριπποι; of cavalry, μόνιπποι; of πεζοί, infantry; of πελτασταί, or
light-armed infantry; and τριακατίαρχαι, or commanders of τριακάδες,
which latter appear to have been divisions of the Ephebi in a tribe. L.
51, συμμ. This word appears to govern τοῖς τριακατίοις. After the second
Μ has been Ν (see the fac-simile). For τριακάτιοι see Ahrens, Dial. Dor.
p. 280; Müller, Dor. II. p. 304, ed. Germ. The letters are of a good
period.
No. 7.—Pl. 79.
Μελά]νιππος Λυσισβάτω
Πολύαρχος Παυσανία
. . . . Δα]μοκρίτω Χάρων Φαυστίω
. . . . Μελανίππω Ξεῦξις Αἰταχίννω (_sic_)
(5) . . . . Ἐρυσίππω Καλλίστρατος Νικαίω
. . . . αχος Ἀρτύλα Ἑλικὰν Λεντίχω
. . . . ατης Ὑπερόχω Λύκος Εὐρυμάχω
. . . . ρχος Ποδώκευς Νίκιππος Εὐφρονίω
. . . . καρτης Θράσωνο[ς Ἀρίστων Λύκων [ος
(10) . . . . ος Φράσωνος Φιλόξηνος Μελανίππω
. . νιππος Ἁγήμονος Τελέσαρχος Κρησίλα
. . Θάλωνος Ἀντίμαχος Φιλοκώμω
. . αν Πρώρω Ἀντίφιλος Αὔσαν [ος
. . λας Εὐκλείδα Ἀλεξίβιος Σμυρναίω
(15) . . αμος Μνάσιος Ἀμμώνιος Ξήνιος
. . της Ἀκέσωνος Ἐπήρατος Πολυδώρω
Ἀριστ]οτέλης Πράτιος Ἄλεξις Λύγαντος
. . αρχος Παυσανία Ἀρίστ[α]ρχος Θράσυος
. . οίδας Λυσάνορος Ἀνάξανδρος Σχίδα
(20) . . . Ἀριστοβώλω Βάραιβις Μοιρισθένευς
. . ενης Χαιριείδευς Ἐξακέστας Ἀριστίππω
. . . . . Πείσιος Ἀλεξίμαχος Ἄλκιος
. . . . ος Νέωνος Προκλῆς Ἰάσονος
. . . . . . άμιος Εὐρυφῶν Ἀρίστιος.
. . . . . . λύκω
On a marble slab, 16 inches by 15 inches by 3 inches, found in the
_Pronaos_ of the large temple near the Stadium. (See _ante_, p. 71.)
This inscription gives a list of names, probably _Ephebi_. (Compare No.
6, _ante_.) L. 10, col. 2, φιλόξηνος, _Doricè_ for φιλόξενος. In L. 18,
col. 2, ΑΡΙΣΤΡΟΧΣ is by mistake written for ΑΡΙΣΤΑΡΧΟΣ. The letters are
of a good period. In the British Museum.
No. 8.—Pl. 80. Νο. 9.
[Ὑπὲρ τῆς τοῦ Αὐτο- κας . . . . . . . . . .
κράτορος Τρα- χεριων . . . . . . . .
ϊανοῦ Γερ]μ[α- μοιηα . . . . . . . .
νικοῦ] Δακικο[ῦ τῇ (?) ἐκ το[ῦ. . . .
(5) νίκης] καὶ δια- (5) νος ετο . . . . . . . .
μο]νῆς καὶ τοῦ καὶ αὐ . . . . . . . .
σύμ] παντος [αὐ- νε . . . . . . . . . . . .
τοῦ] οἴκου καὶ . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
τῆς ἱερᾶς συν-
(10) κλ]ήτου καὶ δήμ-
ου Ῥωμαίων
Ἀντωνία Μεγώ
Μ. Ἀντωνίο[υ ἱερατ-
εύ]σαντος [τοῦ δεῖνα
(15) κ]αὶ . . . . . . . .
νίου Σω . . . . . .
καὶ Ἡγισαν . . . .
τοῦ Βωλακλέος Ἱ-
έρεια Ἀρτέμιδος
(20) ἀριστιει τὰς τὴν
πόλιν καὶ τὴν χώρ-
αν κα]τοικούσας παρ-
[θένους . . . . . . . . . .
On two fragments of a narrow slab of marble found in ruins to the north
of the temple of Apollo. (See _ante_, p. 75.) No. 8 measures 1 foot 10
inches by 9½ inches; No. 9, 11 inches by 7½ inches. The first part of
this inscription is probably a dedication in honour of the Emperor
Trajan, identified here by the epithet ΔΑΚΙΚΟ[Υ. In the latter lines a
priestess of Artemis is mentioned, who promises to give a breakfast,
ἀριστιει, to all the virgins dwelling in the city and territory of
Cyrene. The name Μεγώ, l. 12, occurs in a list of priestesses of Cyrene
(Corpus Inscript. No. 5143). ἀριστιει would appear to be an error of the
lapidary for ἀριστίζει, as there is no such form as ἀριστίω. The
fragment No. 9 is too mutilated to admit of any conjectural restoration,
but it belongs to the same slab. In the British Museum.
No. 10.—Pl. 80.
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Ἀγκάρηνος . . . .
Τι. Κλαύδιος Τορκο . . . .
ἡ πόλις
Τ. Φλάβιος Βαρκα[ῖος (?)
(5) ἡ πόλις
Τ. Φλάβιος Ἀγχιοτ . . . .
Μ. Οὔλπιος Ἀριο . . . . . .
δεγμος Κασκέλλ[ιος
Τ]ι. Κλαύδιος Βατ . . . .
(10) Φιλιππο . . . . . .
On a block of marble lying on the mosaic pavement in the temple of
Apollo. This inscription contains a list of names, but it is too
mutilated to admit of the purport being ascertained.
No. 11.—Pl. 80.
Διὸς Σωτῆρος.
On a column of sandstone, 1 foot 5 inches in diameter, broken at the
top, but present height 3 feet; found in ruins to the north of the
temple of Apollo. (See _ante_, p. 75.) The inscription shows that the
altar was dedicated to Zeus Soter.
No. 12.—Pl. 81.
ὑπὲρ τῆς Νέρωνος Κλαυδίου
Καίσαρος νίκης καὶ σωτηρίας
καὶ τοῦ οἴκου αὐτοῦ παντὸς
Ἀπόλλωνι Ἀποβατηρίῳ
Μ. Ἀντώνιος Γέμελλος ἐκ τῶν τοῦ
Ἀπόλλωνος.
On a block of blue marble, 2 feet 3½ inches by 2 feet 9½ inches by 12½
inches, found in some ruins north of the temple of Apollo. (See _ante_,
p. 75.) This is a dedication to the Apollo Apobaterios, “the protector
of persons landing,” offered by M. Antonius Gemellus, from the funds of
the temple of Apollo, as a vow for the success and safety of the Emperor
Nero and all his family. From the epithet ἀποβατήριος applied to Apollo
in this inscription, it may be inferred that the emperor was then
engaged in some voyage. The name ΝΕΡΩΝΟΣ, in l. 1, is nearly erased. In
the British Museum.
No. 13.—Pl. 81.
ὑπὲρ τῆς Νέρωνος Κλαυδίου
Καίσαρος νίκης καὶ σωτηρίας
καὶ τοῦ οἴκου αὐτοῦ παντὸς
Ἀπόλλωνι Μυρτώῳ Μ. Ἀντώνιος
Γέμελλος ἐκ τῶν τοῦ Ἀπόλλωνος.
On a block of blue limestone found in some ruins to the north of the
temple of Apollo. (See _ante_, p. 75.) This is a dedication to the
Myrtoan Apollo, offered by M. Antonius Gemellus, from the funds of the
temple of Apollo, as a vow for the success and safety of the Emperor
Nero and all his family. Published, Böckh, Corpus Inscript., III. No.
5138.
No. 14.—Pl. 81.
Φι] λῖνος Φιλίνου
ἱαριτεύων
ἀνέθηκε.
On a circular marble pedestal or altar, 2 feet 1 inch by 1 foot 10
inches, found near the north-east angle of the temple of Apollo. (See
_ante_, p. 75.) A dedication by Philinos, son of Philinos, priest,
probably, of Apollo.
No. 15.—Pl. 82.
. . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . επισ. . . .
δημαρχι]κῆς ἐξ[ουσίας
τὸ γ′ ὑπ[άτῳ
τὸ γ′ πατρὶ πατρἰ-
δος ἡ Κυρηναίω[ν
πόλις, ἀφιερώσα[ν-
τος Α. Μινικίου
Ῥούφου ἀνθυπάτου.
On a block of sandstone found in the temple of Apollo. (See _ante_, p.
43.) This appears to be the dedication, by the Proconsul of Cyrene, A.
Minicius Rufus, to some emperor, in his third consulship and third
tribuneship; but these dates do not serve to identify him. The
dedication is made in the name of the people of Cyrene. The name A.
Minicius Rufus does not occur in Gruter’s Corpus Inscript. Latin.
No. 16.—Pl. 82.
. . . . . . Πτο]λεμαῖον Σωτήρων
. . . . . . ιστων Λυσιφάνευς
ἀνέθηκε.
On a slab of marble built into the corner of a wall, in the restored
part of the temple of Apollo, on the second story. As the inscribed face
was turned inwards, this marble must have been taken from some earlier
edifice. This is a dedication by some one, son of Lysiphanes. The
letters are of a good period.
No. 17.—Pl. 82.
. . . . χως Ἡσυχίῳ τῷ κτίστῃ.
On a pedestal, 2 feet 9 inches by 1 foot 7½ inches by 1 foot 7 inches,
ornamented with enriched mouldings, found between the temple of Venus
and the building marked “Palace” on the Plan, but which is probably an
Augusteum.
No. 18.—Pl. 83.
Εὐβάτας Ἀκεσάνδρω Ἀλεξίμαχος Αἰγα . . . .
Ἡρίλοχος Στράτητος Ἐτυμοκλῆς Ἀρις . .
Ἁγήσαρχος Κλέωνος δαμοκοσμοθε . . . .
Τελεσφορέντες τὰν θ[εόν (?)
On a slab of marble found in a building near the temple of Bacchus,
marked “Palace” on the Plan, but which is probably an Augusteum. (See
_ante_, p. 76.) Ll. 3, 4 cannot be read satisfactorily. The Ο at the end
of δαμο is quite clear in the rubbing, otherwise we might read
Ἀρισ[τοδάμω κοσμοθ[έται]. Τελεσφορέντες is also perfectly clear, but how
it can be formed from τελεσφορέω is not so clear. It may be either
miswritten for τελεσφορεῦντες? or formed from τελεσφόρημι. In Hom. we
have φορῆναι, φορήμεναι, &c.
No. 19.—Pl. 82.
Κυρήνην πολίων μητρόπτολιν, ἣν στέφει αὐτὴ
ἠπείρων Λιβύη τρισσὸν ἔχουσα κλέος,
Ἐνθάδ’ ὑπὲρ μελάθροιο λεοντοφόνον θέτο Κάρπος,
Εὐξάμενος μεγάλης σῆμα φιλοξενίης.
At the foot of a bas-relief found on the site of the temple of Venus.
(See _ante_, p. 77 and p. 97.) The inscription records the dedication of
the relief, in token of great hospitality, by one Karpos, who, it may be
presumed, had as a stranger been hospitably received by the people of
Cyrene. The subject of the relief is stated to be the crowning of the
lion-slaying nymph Cyrene by Libya, who has the triple glory of
continents—ἠπείρων τρισσὸν ἔχουσα κλέος. This seems to refer to the
threefold population of Libya, native Africans, and European and Asiatic
colonists. The relief is to be placed ὑπὲρ μελάθροιο, which must be
translated “above the architrave,” for the relief is evidently a metope.
No. 20.—Pl. 83.
Γ]άϊος Νώνιο[ς . . . . εινος
τῇ θεῷ
Μιλήσιος ὁ καὶ Κυρηνε . . . . . . ενος
On a marble pedestal found in the _cella_ of the temple of Venus. (See
_ante_, p. 77.) A statue must have stood on this pedestal, as part of
the feet remained.
No. 21.—Pl. 83.
. . . . . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . σαγόρα φ Ἀννικέρ[ιος
. . . . . . Ξούθω φ Λυσι . . . .
. . . . Ἀ]λέξιος φ Φιλοκώ[μω
. . . . Θευχρήστω φ Σωσικράτευς
Βιάνδρω φ Λυ . . . .
Ἀναξ. . . .
Fragment of a slab of marble found in the Augusteum. (See _ante_, p.
76.) This inscription seems to be part of a list of subscribers to some
public contribution.
No. 22.—Pl. 83.
Ἀστυκράτης
Εὐκλείδα
On a marble pedestal, 4 feet by 1 foot 6 inches by 1 foot, found in the
_pronaos_ of the temple of Venus. (See _ante_, p. 77.) The letters are
of a good period.
No. 23.—Pl. 83.
Αὐτοκράτορα Καίσαρα Τεῖτον Αἴ]λιον Ἀδριανὸν
Ἀντωνεῖνον Σεβαστὸν θεῶ Ἀδριανοῦ] υἱὸν, θεῶ
Τραϊανοῦ Παρθικοῦ] υἱωνὸν, θεῶ
Νερούα ἔγγονον, σωτῆρα κ]αὶ εὐεργέταν
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . ὑπὸ Τείτου
Fragment of a slab of marble found in the Augusteum. (See _ante_, p.
76.) This appears to be part of a dedication to the Emperor Antoninus
Pius, whose bust was found in the same building.
No. 24.—Pl. 84.
Μ. Ἀντώνιος Κερέαδις
Πτολεμαίου Ι.Ι.Ι.Ι. υἱός
Αἰγλάνωρ
Μητρόδωρος Ι. τοῦ
Μητροδώρου
L{ρη}. Τι. Κλαύδιος Ἀρχίππου
υἱὸς Ἄρχιππος
L{pθ} Μ. Ἀντώνιος Μ. Ἀντωνίου
Φλάμμα υἱὸς Κασκέλλιος.
On a large marble slab, measuring 3 feet 1 inch by 2 feet 7 inches by 1
foot 1 inch, built into a partition wall in the temple of Apollo, the
writing turned inwards. It contains a list of names of priests of
Apollo. This is shown by the inscription from Cyrene (Corpus Inscript.,
III. No. 5144), where the name M. Antonius Kaskellios occurs with the
same date. Λ is Λυκάβαντι, _in the year_ . . . The two dates {ρη} and
{pθ} refer to the era of Actium. (See Franz, Corpus Inscript., _loc.
cit._ &c., p. 1241.) The four vertical strokes which precede the word
υἱός, l. 2, probably indicate that the ancestors of M. Antonios Kereadis
for four generations had been called Ptolemaios. The use of vertical
strokes is peculiar here. The usual way of marking the successive
generations is either by letters, α′ β′ γ′, or by the words δίς, τρίς,
κ.τ.λ. (_See_ Franz, Elementa Epigraphices Græcæ, p. 304.) So Μητρόδωρος
Ι. τοῦ Μητροδώρου is Metrodoros, grandson of Metrodoros. The M. Antonius
Flamma mentioned in this inscription is probably the same as the
Antonius Flamma mentioned by Tacitus, Hist. IV. 45.
No. 25.—Pl. 84.
Ἀσκλαπὸν Ἀσκλαπῶ ἱερατεύον-
τα τῶ Ἀπόλλωνος ἀρετᾶς ἕ[νε-
κα καὶ εὐνοίας ἅς ἔχων δια[τε-
λεῖ ἔς τε τὸς κοινὸς εὐεργ[έτας
Ῥωμαίος καὶ ἐς τὰν πόλιν κα[ὶ
τὸς ἱαρὲς καὶ τᾶς ποτὶ τὸ[ς θεὸς
χάριν εὐ]σεβείας οἱ ἱαρὲς τ[ῶ
Ἀπ]όλλωνος ἀνέθ[ηκαν.
On a slab of marble built into a rough modern wall about 20 yards to the
westward of the temple of Apollo. Published, Böckh, Corpus Inscript.,
III. No. 5131, from a copy taken before the marble was broken at the
edges, and which is therefore more complete; and Letronne, Journal des
Savans, 1848, p. 372.
On the reverse of the same slab—
No. 26.—Pl. 84.
Τ. Κλαύδιος Ἀριστομέ-
νης Μάγνος, ὁ καὶ
Περικλῆς, ἱαρειτεύων
ἕκταν τᾶν τῶ Ἀπόλλω-
νος προσόδων.
This is a dedication of a statue in honour of Asclapos, priest of
Apollo, on account of his services to the city, the Romans, and the
priests, and his piety to the gods. The dedication is made by the
priests of Apollo. This records a dedication made out of a sixth part of
the revenues of the temple of Apollo by T. Claudius Aristomenes Magnus,
priest of Apollo. Published by Franz, Corpus Inscript., III. No. 5137,
who reads ἐκ τᾶν τῶ Ἀπόλλωνος, and rejects the second ΤΑΝ as an
erroneous repetition; but the reading is certain. (_See_ Letronne,
Journal des Savans, 1848, p. 371.)
No. 27.—Pl. 85.
Ἀριστοτέλης
Σώσιος, ἱαρεὺς
Ἀπόλλωνος, μηθέ-
να ἐντίθη . .
In large letters over one of the recesses in a large tomb on the south-
east side of the city, adjoining the path leading to Sassaf and
Gheigheb. L. 4, ἐντίθη for ἐντίθει. Published, Böckh, Corpus Inscript.,
III. No. 5154.
No. 28.—Pl. 85.
Γάϊος Ἀπείσιος Διονύσω
Νίγερ πρεσβύτερος ἱερεὺς
σν
Over a compartment in the interior of a small tomb in the Eastern
Necropolis. This inscription contains the name of Caius Apeisios Niger,
a priest of Dionysos, a temple of which Deity was discovered in the
course of the excavations.
No. 29.—Pl. 86.
Βαρκλῆος
Ἀστυκλεῦς
Μνάστα
Κρίνιος.
Over a recess in the same tomb whence No. 27 is taken. Published, Corpus
Inscript., III. No. 5166; and Pacho, tab. LXV. 10, where the first name
is incorrectly read Χ]αρ[ι]κλῆος.
No. 30.—Pl. 86. No. 31.—Pl. 86.
Σίμων Σι . . . . . . . . Στράτω-
Πευσάν- ν Εὐπό-
δρου L δ′. λιδος
L λ′.
No. 32.—Pl. 86.
Ποπελίας Πευσά-
νδρου ΘLλθ′.
Nos. 30, 31, 32 are round the entrance of a small tomb in the Eastern
Necropolis. The four last letters of l. 2 seem to be ΘΛ[υκάβαντι] λθ′,
the year 38, recording probably the age at which Popelias died. The
significance of the Θ which precedes the L must be left to conjecture;
perhaps it stands for θεοῖς.
No. 33.
. . . . ΡΑΙΑΝΩΙΑΔΡΙΑΝΩ. . . .
. . . . ΟΝΣΥΝΤΩΙΠΡΟΝ . . . .
ΤΩ . . . . ΦΛ . . . . ΦΛ . . . .
Τ]ραϊανῷ Ἀδριανῷ
τὸν να]ὸν σὺν τῷ πρόν[αῳ
τω φλ φλ
On a piece of architrave of sandstone, found in ruins to the north of
the temple of Apollo. This appears to be part of the dedication of a
temple to the Emperor Trajan.
THE END.
[Illustration: PL. 77.
CYRENE.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen
INSCRIPTIONS]
[Illustration: PL. 78.
CYRENE.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen
INSCRIPTIONS]
[Illustration: PL. 79.
CYRENE.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen
INSCRIPTIONS]
[Illustration: PL. 80.
CYRENE.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen
INSCRIPTIONS]
[Illustration: PL. 81.
CYRENE.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen
INSCRIPTIONS]
[Illustration: PL. 82.
CYRENE.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen
INSCRIPTIONS]
[Illustration: PL. 83.
CYRENE.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen
INSCRIPTIONS]
[Illustration: PL. 84.
CYRENE.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen
INSCRIPTIONS]
[Illustration: PL. 85.
CYRENE.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen
INSCRIPTIONS]
[Illustration: PL. 86.
CYRENE.
Day & Son, Lithrs. to the Queen
INSCRIPTIONS]
FOOTNOTES:
[Footnote 1: Thrige, p. 48.]
[Footnote 2: We were informed by some Arabs that these paintings were
quarried out by M. Bourville.]
[Footnote 3: The plans of the Temples of Apollo and Bacchus, have
unfortunately been lost.]
[Footnote 4: In the foreground, Plate 46, is shown a circular tomb,
protected by an outer wall, with a passage left between. We did not meet
with this type of tomb at Cyrene.]
[Footnote 5: Another place he had intended to make a stand and dispute
our passage was at a range of tombs called by the Arabs the
“Kenissieh.”]
[Footnote 6: The view opposite will show more clearly this locality, as
well as the exterior of the tombs we lived in during our stay.]
[Footnote 7: Ueber eine in der Gegend der ehemaligen Kyrene gesammelte
Wurzelrinde, und über das Silphium der alten Griechen.
Dr. Schroff gives the following references to modern literature of
_Silphium_:—
_Link_, Ueber das Kyrenäische Silphium. Akad. Berlin, 19 März, 1829.
_Böttiger_, Ueber das Silphium oder Laser von Kyrene. Oken’s Osis.
1829, p. 317.
_Sprengel_, Beiträge zur Geschichte der Medicin, i. pt. i. 1794;
Geschichte der Botanik, i. 1817.
_Thrige_, Res Cyrenensium, &c. Hafniæ, 1828.
_Eckhel_, Doctrina Numorum veterum conscripta. Pt. i. vol. iv. Vindob.
1794.
_Müller_, Numismatique de l’ancienne Afrique. Vol. i. Les Monnaies de
la Cyrénaïque. Copenh. 1860.
_Macé_, Rev. Archéologique, xiv. 1857.
_Beechey_, Expedition, chap. xv.
_Pacho_, Voy. dans la Cyrénaïque en 1825, ch. xviii.
_Cella_, Viaggio da Tripoli, &c., Geneva, 1819, p. 127.
_Barth_, Wanderungen, &c. Bd. i. 1849.]
[Footnote 8: “Es gibt nicht gar so viele Medicinalpflanzen der alten
Welt, von denen man mit einer solchen Sicherheit behaupten kann, dass
sie mit uns genau bekannten Pflanzen zusammen fallen, wie dies hier mit
der Thapsia der Alten und mit _Thapsia Silphium_, und _Th. garganica_
unserer Botaniker der Fall ist.”—(_Thapsia Silphium_, of Viviani, is a
mere variety of _T. Garganica_.)]
*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 78462 ***
|